COLLECTION OF BRITISH
AUTHORS. VOL. CXLVI.
PRESENTIMENTS are
strange things! and so are sympathies; and so are signs; and the three combined
make one mystery to which humanity has not yet found the key. I never laughed
at presentiments in my life, because I have had strange ones of my own. Sympathies,
I believe, exist (for instance, between far-distant, long-absent, wholly
estranged relatives asserting, notwithstanding their alienation, the unity of
the source to which each traces his origin) whose workings baffle mortal
comprehension. And signs, for aught we know, may be but the sympathies of
Nature with man.
When I was a little
girl, only six years old, I one night heard Bessie Leaven say to Martha Abbot
that she had been dreaming about a little child; and that to dream of children
was a sure sign of trouble, either to one’s self or one’s kin. The saying might
have worn out of my memory, had not a circumstance immediately followed which
served indelibly to fix it there. The next day Bessie was sent for home to the
deathbed of her little sister.
Of late I had often
recalled this saying and this incident; for during the past week scarcely a
night had gone over my couch that had not brought with it a dream of an infant,
which I sometimes hushed in my arms, sometimes dandled on my knee, sometimes watched
playing with daisies on a lawn, or again, dabbling its hands in running water.
It was a wailing child this night, and a laughing one the next: now it nestled
close to me, and now it ran from me; but whatever mood the apparition evinced,
whatever aspect it wore, it failed not for seven successive nights to meet me
the moment I entered the land of slumber.
I did not like this
iteration of one idea -- this strange recurrence of one image, and I grew
nervous as bedtime approached and the hour of the vision drew near. It was from
companionship with this baby-phantom I had been roused on that moonlight night
when I heard the cry; and it was on the afternoon of the day following I was
summoned downstairs by a message that some one wanted me in Mrs. Fairfax’s
room. On repairing thither, I found a man waiting for me, having the appearance
of a gentleman’s servant: he was dressed in deep mourning, and the hat he held
in his hand was surrounded with a crape band.
"I daresay you
hardly remember me, Miss," he said, rising as I entered; "but my name
is Leaven: I lived coachman with Mrs. Reed when you were at Gateshead, eight or
nine years since, and I live there still."
"Oh, Robert! how
do you do? I remember you very well: you used to give me a ride sometimes on Miss
Georgiana’s bay pony. And how is Bessie? You are married to Bessie?"
"Yes, Miss: my
wife is very hearty, thank you; she brought me another little one about two
months since -- we have three now -- and both mother and child are
thriving."
"And are the
family well at the house, Robert?"
"I am sorry I can’t
give you better news of them, Miss: they are very badly at present -- in great
trouble."
"I hope no one is
dead," I said, glancing at his black dress. He too looked down at the
crape round his hat and replied, --
"Mr. John died
yesterday was a week, at his chambers in London."
"Mr. John?"
"Yes."
"And how does his
mother bear it?"
"Why, you see,
Miss Eyre, it is not a common mishap: his life has been very wild: these last
three years he gave himself up to strange ways, and his death was
shocking."
"I heard from
Bessie he was not doing well."
"Doing well! He
could not do worse: he ruined his health and his estate amongst the worst men
and the worst women. He got into debt and into jail: his mother helped him out
twice, but as soon as he was free he returned to his old companions and habits.
His head was not strong: the knaves he lived amongst fooled him beyond anything
I ever heard. He came down to Gateshead about three weeks ago and wanted missis
to give up all to him. Missis refused: her means have long been much reduced by
his extravagance; so he went back again, and the next news was that he was
dead. How he died, God knows! -- they say he killed himself."
I was silent: the
tidings were frightful. Robert Leaven resumed: --
"Missis had been
out of health herself for some time: she had got very stout, but was not strong
with it; and the loss of money and fear of poverty were quite breaking her
down. The information about Mr. John’s death and the manner of it came too
suddenly: it brought on a stroke. She was three days without speaking; but last
Tuesday she seemed rather better: she appeared as if she wanted to say
something, and kept making signs to my wife and mumbling. It was only yesterday
morning, however, that Bessie understood she was pronouncing your name; and at
last she made out the words, "Bring Jane -- fetch Jane Eyre: I want to
speak to her." Bessie is not sure whether she is in her right mind, or
means anything by the words; but she told Miss Reed and Miss Georgiana, and
advised them to send for you. The young ladies put it off at first; but their
mother grew so restless, and said, "Jane, Jane," so many times, that
at last they consented. I left Gateshead yesterday: and if you can get ready,
Miss, I should like to take you back with me early to-morrow morning."
"Yes, Robert, I
shall be ready: it seems to me that I ought to go."
"I think so too,
Miss. Bessie said she was sure you would not refuse: but I suppose you will
have to ask leave before you can get off?"
"Yes; and I will
do it now"; and having directed him to the servants’ hall, and recommended
him to the care of John’s wife, and the attentions of John himself, I went in
search of Mr. Rochester.
He was not in any of
the lower rooms; he was not in the yard, the stables, or the grounds. I asked
Mrs. Fairfax if she had seen him; -- yes: she believed he was playing billiards
with Miss Ingram. To the billiard-room I hastened: the click of balls and the
hum of voices resounded thence; Mr. Rochester, Miss Ingram, the two Misses
Eshton, and their admirers, were all busied in the game. It required some
courage to disturb so interesting a party; my errand, however, was one I could
not defer, so I approached the master where he stood at Miss Ingram’s side. She
turned as I drew near, and looked at me haughtily: her eyes seemed to demand,
"What can the creeping creature want now?" and when I said, in a low
voice, "Mr. Rochester," she made a movement as if tempted to order me
away. I remember her appearance at the moment, -- it was very graceful and very
striking: she wore a morning robe of sky-blue crape; a gauzy azure scarf was
twisted in her hair. She had been all animation with the game, and irritated
pride did not lower the expression of her haughty lineaments.
"Does that person
want you?" she inquired of Mr. Rochester; and Mr. Rochester turned to see
who the "person" was. He made a curious grimace, -- one of his
strange and equivocal demonstrations- threw down his cue and followed me from
the room.
"Well, Jane?"
he said, as he rested his back against the school-room door, which he had shut.
"If you please,
Sir, I want leave of absence for a week or two."
"What to do? --
where to go?"
"To see a sick
lady who has sent for me."
"What sick lady?
-- where does she live?"
"At Gateshead, in
----shire."
"----shire? That
is a hundred miles off! Who may she be that sends for people to see her that
distance?"
"Her name is Reed,
Sir, -- Mrs. Reed."
"Reed of
Gateshead? There was a Reed of Gateshead, a magistrate."
"It is his widow,
Sir."
"And what have you
to do with her? How do you know her?"
"Mr. Reed was my
uncle, -- my mother’s brother."
"The deuce he was!
You never told me that before: you always said you had no relations."
"None that would
own me, Sir. Mr. Reed is dead, and his wife cast me off."
"Why?"
"Because I was
poor, and burdensome, and she disliked me."
"But Reed left
children? -- you must have cousins? Sir George Lynn was talking of a Reed of
Gateshead yesterday, who, he said, was one of the veriest rascals on town; and
Ingram was mentioning a Georgiana Reed of the same place, who was much admired
for her beauty a season or two ago in London."
"John Reed is
dead, too, Sir: he ruined himself and half-ruined his family, and is supposed
to have committed suicide. The news so shocked his mother that it brought on an
apoplectic attack."
"And what good can
you do her? Nonsense, Jane! I would never think of running a hundred miles to
see an old lady who will, perhaps, be dead before you reach her: besides, you
say she cast you off."
"Yes, Sir, but
that is long ago; and when her circumstances were very different: I could not
be easy to neglect her wishes now."
"How long will you
stay?"
"As short a time
as possible, Sir."
"Promise me only
to stay a week --"
"I had better not
pass my word: I might be obliged to break it."
"At all events you
will come back: you will not be induced under any pretext to take up a
permanent residence with her?"
"Oh, no! I shall
certainly return if all be well."
"And who goes with
you? You don’t travel a hundred miles alone."
"No, Sir, she has
sent her coachman."
"A person to be
trusted?"
"Yes, Sir, he has
lived ten years in the family."
Mr. Rochester
meditated. "When do you wish to go?"
"Early to-morrow
morning, Sir."
"Well, you must
have some money; you can’t travel without money, and I daresay you have not
much: I have given you no salary yet. How much have you in the world,
Jane?" he asked, smiling.
I drew out my purse; a
meagre thing it was. "Five shillings, Sir." He took the purse, poured
the hoard into his palm, and chuckled over it as if its scantiness amused him.
Soon he produced his pocket-book: "Here," said he, offering me a
note; it was fifty pounds, and he owed me but fifteen. I told him I had no
change.
"I don’t want
change; you know that. Take your wages."
I declined accepting
more than was my due. He scowled at first; then, as if recollecting something,
he said: --
"Right, right!
Better not give you all now: you would, perhaps, stay away three months if you
had fifty pounds. There are ten; is it not plenty?"
"Yes, Sir, but now
you owe me five."
"Come back for it,
then; I am your banker for forty pounds."
"Mr. Rochester, I
may as well mention another matter of business to you while I have the
opportunity."
"Matter of
business? I am curious to hear it."
"You have as good
as informed me, Sir, that you are going shortly to be married?"
"Yes; what
then?"
"In that case,
Sir, Adèle ought to go to school: I am sure you will perceive the necessity of
it."
"To get her out of
my bride’s way, who might otherwise walk over her rather too emphatically?
There’s sense in the suggestion; not a doubt of it. Adèle, as you say, must go
to school; and you, of course, must march straight to -- the devil?"
"I hope not, Sir;
but I must seek another situation somewhere."
"In course!"
he exclaimed, with a twang of voice and a distortion of features equally
fantastic and ludicrous. He looked at me some minutes.
"And old Madam
Reed, or the Misses, her daughters, will be solicited by you to seek a place, I
suppose?"
"No, Sir; I am not
on such terms with my relatives as would justify me in asking favours of them
-- but I shall advertise."
"You shall walk up
the pyramids of Egypt!" he growled. "At your peril you advertise! I
wish I had only offered you a sovereign instead of ten pounds. Give me back
nine pounds, Jane; I’ve a use for it."
"And so have I,
Sir," I returned, putting my hands and my purse behind me. "I could
not spare the money on any account."
"Little
niggard!" said he, "refusing me a pecuniary request! Give me five
pounds, Jane."
"Not five
shillings, Sir; nor five pence."
"Just let me look
at the cash."
"No, Sir; you are
not to be trusted."
"Jane!"
"Sir?"
"Promise me one
thing."
"I’ll promise you
anything, Sir, that I think I am likely to perform."
"Not to advertise:
and to trust this quest of a situation to me. I’ll find you one in time."
"I shall be glad
so to do, Sir, if you, in your turn, will promise that I and Adèle shall be
both safe out of the house before your bride enters it."
"Very well! very
well! I’ll pledge my word on it. You go to-morrow, then?"
"Yes, Sir;
early."
"Shall you come
down to the drawing-room after dinner?"
"No, Sir, I must
prepare for the journey."
"Then you and I
must bid good-bye for a little while?"
"I suppose so,
Sir."
"And how do people
perform that ceremony of parting, Jane? Teach me; I’m not quite up to it."
"They say,
Farewell, or any other form they prefer."
"Then say
it."
"Farewell, Mr.
Rochester, for the present."
"What must I
say?"
"The same, if you
like, Sir."
"Farewell, Miss
Eyre, for the present; is that all?"
"Yes."
"It seems stingy,
to my notions, and dry, and unfriendly. I should like something else: a little
addition to the rite. If one shook hands, for instance; but no, -- that would
not content me either. So you’ll do no more than say Farewell, Jane?"
"It is enough,
Sir: as much good-will may be conveyed in one hearty word as in many."
"Very likely; but
it is blank and cool -- ‘farewell.’"
"How long is he
going to stand with his back against that door?" I asked myself; "I
want to commence my packing." The dinner-bell rang, and suddenly away he
bolted, without another syllable: I saw him no more during the day, and was off
before he had risen in the morning.
I reached the lodge at
Gateshead about five o’clock in the afternoon of the first of May: I stepped in
there before going up to the hall. It was very clean and neat: the ornamental
windows were hung with little white curtains; the floor was spotless; the grate
and fire-irons were burnished bright, and the fire burnt clear. Bessie sat on
the hearth, nursing her last-born, and Robert and his sister played quietly in
a corner.
"Bless you! -- I
knew you would come!" exclaimed Mrs. Leaven, as I entered.
"Yes,
Bessie," said I, after I had kissed her; "and I trust I am not too
late. How is Mrs. Reed? -- Alive still, I hope."
"Yes, she is
alive; and more sensible and collected than she was. The doctor says she may
linger a week or two yet; but he hardly thinks she will finally recover."
"Has she mentioned
me lately?"
"She was talking
of you only this morning, and wishing you would come: but she is sleeping now,
or was ten minutes ago, when I was up at the house. She generally lies in a
kind of lethargy all the afternoon, and wakes up about six or seven. Will you
rest yourself here an hour, Miss, and then I will go up with you?"
Robert here entered,
and Bessie laid her sleeping child in the cradle and went to welcome him:
afterwards she insisted on my taking off my bonnet and having some tea; for she
said I looked pale and tired. I was glad to accept her hospitality; and I
submitted to be relieved of my travelling garb just as passively as I used to
let her undress me when a child.
Old times crowded fast
back on me as I watched her bustling about -- setting out the tea-tray with her
best china, cutting bread and butter, toasting a tea-cake, and, between whiles,
giving little Robert or Jane an occasional tap or push, just as she used to
give me in former days. Bessie had retained her quick temper as well as her
light foot and good looks.
Tea ready, I was going
to approach the table; but she desired me to sit still, quite in her old
peremptory tones. I must be served at the fireside, she said; and she placed
before me a little round stand with my cup and a plate of toast, absolutely as
she used to accommodate me with some privately purloined dainty on a nursery
chair: and I smiled and obeyed her as in bygone days.
She wanted to know if I
was happy at Thornfield-Hall, and what sort of a person the mistress was; and
when I told her there was only a master, whether he was a nice gentleman, and
if I liked him. I told her he was rather an ugly man, but quite a gentleman;
and that he treated me kindly, and I was content. Then I went on to describe to
her the gay company that had lately been staying at the house; and to these
details Bessie listened with interest: they were precisely of the kind she
relished.
In such conversation an
hour was soon gone: Bessie restored to me my bonnet, etc., and, accompanied by
her, I quitted the lodge for the hall. It was also accompanied by her that I
had, nearly nine years ago, walked down the path I was now ascending. On a
dark, misty, raw morning in January, I had left a hostile roof with a desperate
and embittered heart -- a sense of outlawry and almost of reprobation -- to
seek the chilly harbourage of Lowood: that bourne so far away and unexplored.
The same hostile roof now again rose before me: my prospects were doubtful yet;
and I had yet an aching heart. I still felt as a wanderer on the face of the
earth; but I experienced firmer trust in myself and my own powers, and less
withering dread of oppression. The gaping wound of my wrongs, too, was now
quite healed; and the flame of resentment extinguished.
"You shall go into
the breakfast-room first," said Bessie, as she preceded me through the
hall; "the young ladies will be there."
In another moment I was
within that apartment. There was every article of furniture looking just as it
did on the morning I was first introduced to Mr. Brocklehurst: the very rug he
had stood upon still covered the hearth. Glancing at the bookcases, I thought I
could distinguish the two volumes of Bewick’s British Birds occupying their old
place on the third shelf, and Gulliver’s Travels and the Arabian Nights ranged
just above. The inanimate objects were not changed; but the living things had
altered past recognition.
Two young ladies
appeared before me; one very tall, almost as tall as Miss Ingram, -- very thin
too, with a sallow face and severe mien. There was something ascetic in her
look, was augmented by the extreme plainness of a straight-skirted, black,
stuff dress, a starched linen collar, hair combed away from the temples, and
the nun-like ornament of a string of ebony beads and a crucifix. This I felt
sure was Eliza, though I could trace little resemblance to her former self in
that elongated and colourless visage.
The other was as
certainly Georgiana: but not the Georgiana I remembered -- the slim and
fairy-like girl of eleven. This was a full-blown, very plump damsel, fair as
waxwork, with handsome and regular features, languishing blue eyes, and
ringleted yellow hair. The hue of her dress was black too; but its fashion was
so different from her sister’s -- so much more flowing and becoming -- it
looked as stylish as the other’s looked puritanical.
In each of the sisters
there was one trait of the mother -- and only one; the thin and pallid elder
daughter had her parent’s Cairngorm eye: the blooming and luxuriant younger
girl had her contour of jaw and chin, -- perhaps a little softened, but still
imparting an indescribable hardness to the countenance, otherwise so voluptuous
and buxom.
Both ladies, as I
advanced, rose to welcome me, and both addressed me by the name of "Miss
Eyre." Eliza’s greeting was delivered in a short, abrupt voice, without a
smile; and then she sat down again, fixed her eyes on the fire, and seemed to
forget me. Georgiana added to her "How d’ye do?" several commonplaces
about my journey, the weather, and so on, uttered in rather a drawling tone:
and accompanied by sundry side-glances that measured me from head to foot-now
traversing the folds of my drab merino pelisse, and now lingering on the plain
trimming of my cottage bonnet. Young ladies have a remarkable way of letting
you know that they think you a "quiz" without actually saying the
words. A certain superciliousness of look, coolness of manner, nonchalance of
tone, express fully their sentiments on the point, without committing them by
any positive rudeness in word or deed.
A sneer, however,
whether covert or open, had now no longer that power over me it once possessed:
as I sat between my cousins, I was surprised to find how easy I felt under the
total neglect of the one and the semi-sarcastic attentions of the other --
Eliza did not mortify, nor Georgiana ruffle me. The fact was, I had other
things to think about; within the last few months feelings had been stirred in
me so much more potent than any they could raise -- pains and pleasures so much
more acute and exquisite had been excited than any it was in their power to
inflict or bestow -- that their airs gave me no concern either for good or bad.
"How is Mrs.
Reed?" I asked soon, looking calmly at Georgiana, who thought fit to
bridle at the direct address, as if it were an unexpected liberty.
"Mrs. Reed? Ah,
mama, you mean; she is extremely poorly: I doubt if you can see her
to-night."
"If," said I,
"you would just step upstairs and tell her I am come, I should be much
obliged to you."
Georgiana almost
started, and she opened her blue eyes wild and wide. "I know she had a
particular wish to see me," I added, "and I would not defer attending
to her desire longer than is absolutely necessary."
"Mama dislikes
being disturbed in an evening," remarked Eliza. I soon rose, quietly took
off my bonnet and gloves, uninvited, and said I would just step out to Bessie
-- who was, I dared say, in the kitchen -- and ask her to ascertain whether
Mrs. Reed was disposed to receive me or not to-night. I went, and having found
Bessie and despatched her on my errand, I proceeded to take further measures.
It had heretofore been my habit always to shrink from arrogance: received as I
had been to-day, I should, a year ago, have resolved to quit Gateshead the very
next morning; now, it was disclosed to me all at once that that would be a
foolish plan. I had taken a journey of a hundred miles to see my aunt, and I
must stay with her till she was better -- or dead: as to her daughters’ pride
or folly, I must put it on one side, make myself independent of it. So I
addressed the housekeeper; asked her to show me a room, told her I should
probably be a visitor here for a week or two, had my trunk conveyed to my
chamber, and followed it thither myself: I met Bessie on the landing.
"Missis is
awake," said she; "I have told her you are here: come and let us see
if she will know you."
I did not need to be
guided to the well-known room, to which I had so often been summoned for
chastisement or reprimand in former days. I hastened before Bessie; I softly
opened the door: a shaded light stood on the table, for it was now getting
dark. There was the great four-post bed with amber hangings as of old; there
the toilet-table, the arm-chair, and the footstool, at which I had a hundred
times been sentenced to kneel, to ask pardon for offences by me uncommitted. I
looked into a certain corner near, half expecting to see the slim outline of a
once dreaded switch which used to lurk there, waiting to leap out imp-like and
lace my quivering palm or shrinking neck. I approached the bed; I opened the
curtains and leant over the high-piled pillows.
Well did I remember
Mrs. Reed’s face, and I eagerly sought the familiar image. It is a happy thing
that time quells the longings of vengeance and hushes the promptings of rage
and aversion. I had left this woman in bitterness and hate, and I came back to
her now with no other emotion than a sort of ruth for her great sufferings, and
a strong yearning to forget and forgive all injuries -- to be reconciled and
clasp hands in amity.
The well-known face was
there: stern, relentless as ever -- there was that peculiar eye which nothing
could melt, and the somewhat raised, imperious, despotic eyebrow. How often had
it lowered on me menace and hate! and how the recollection of childhood’s
terrors and sorrows revived as I traced its harsh line now! And yet I stooped
down and kissed her: she looked at me.
"Is this Jane
Eyre?" she said.
"Yes, Aunt Reed.
How are you, dear aunt?"
I had once vowed that I
would never call her aunt again: I thought it no sin to forget and break that
vow now. My fingers had fastened on her hand which lay outside the sheet: had
she pressed mine kindly, I should at that moment have experienced true
pleasure. But unimpressionable natures are not so soon softened, nor are
natural antipathies so readily eradicated. Mrs. Reed took her hand away, and,
turning her face rather from me, she remarked that the night was warm. Again
she regarded me so icily, I felt at once that her opinion of me -- her feeling
towards me -- was unchanged and unchangeable. I knew by her stony eye -- opaque
to tenderness, indissoluble to tears -- that she was resolved to consider me
bad to the last; because to believe me good would give her no generous
pleasure: only a sense of mortification.
I felt pain, and then I
felt ire; and then I felt a determination to subdue her -- to be her mistress
in spite both of her nature and her will. My tears had risen, just as in
childhood: I ordered them back to their source. I brought a chair to the
bed-head: I sat down and leaned over the pillow.
"You sent for
me," I said, "and I am here; and it is my intention to stay till I
see how you get on."
"Oh, of course!
You have seen my daughters?"
"Yes."
"Well, you may
tell them I wish you to stay till I can talk some things over with you I have
on my mind: to-night it is too late, and I have a difficulty in recalling them.
But there was something I wished to say -- let me see --"
The wandering look and
changed utterance told what wreck had taken place in her once vigorous frame.
Turning restlessly, she drew the bedclothes round her; my elbow, resting on a
corner of the quilt, fixed it down: she was at once irritated.
"Sit up!"
said she; "don’t annoy me with holding the clothes fast. Are you Jane
Eyre?"
"I am Jane
Eyre."
"I have had more
trouble with that child than any one would believe. Such a burden to be left on
my hands -- and so much annoyance as she caused me, daily and hourly, with her
incomprehensible disposition, and her sudden starts of temper, and her
continual, unnatural watchings of one’s movements! I declare she talked to me
once like something mad, or like a fiend -- no child ever spoke or looked as
she did; I was glad to get her away from the house. What did they do with her
at Lowood? The fever broke out there, and many of the pupils died. She,
however, did not die: but I said she did -- I wish she had died!"
"A strange wish,
Mrs. Reed; why do you hate her so?"
"I had a dislike
to her mother always; for she was my husband’s only sister, and a great
favourite with him: he opposed the family’s disowning her when she made her low
marriage; and when news came of her death, he wept like a simpleton. He would
send for the baby; though I entreated him rather to put it out to nurse and pay
for its maintenance. I hated it the first time I set my eyes on it -- a sickly,
whining, pining thing! It would wail in its cradle all night long -- not
screaming heartily like any other child, but whimpering and moaning. Reed
pitied it; and he used to nurse it and notice it as if it had been his own: more,
indeed, than he ever noticed his own at that age. He would try to make my
children friendly to the little beggar: the darlings could not bear it, and he
was angry with them when they showed their dislike. In his last illness, he had
it brought continually to his bedside; and but an hour before he died, he bound
me by vow to keep the creature. I would as soon have been charged with a pauper
brat out of a workhouse: but he was weak, naturally weak. John does not at all
resemble his father, and I am glad of it: John is like me and like my brothers
-- he is quite a Gibson. Oh, I wish he would cease tormenting me with letters
for money! I have no more money to give him: we are getting poor. I must send
away half the servants and shut up part of the house; or let it off. I can
never submit to do that -- yet how are we to get on? Two-thirds of my income
goes in paying the interest of mortgages. John gambles dreadfully, and always
loses -- poor boy! He is beset by sharpers: John is sunk and degraded -- his
look is frightful -- I feel ashamed for him when I see him."
She was getting much
excited. "I think I had better leave her now," said I to Bessie, who
stood on the other side of the bed.
"Perhaps you had,
Miss: but she often talks in this way towards night -- in the morning she is
calmer."
I rose.
"Stop!" exclaimed Mrs. Reed, "there is another thing I wished to
say. He threatens me -- he continually threatens me with his own death, or
mine: and I dream sometimes that I see him laid out with a great wound in his
throat, or with a swollen and blackened face. I am come to a strange pass: I
have heavy troubles. What is to be done? How is the money to be had?"
Bessie now endeavoured
to persuade her to take a sedative draught: she succeeded with difficulty. Soon
after, Mrs. Reed grew more composed, and sank into a dozing state. I then left
her.
More than ten days
elapsed before I had again any conversation with her. She continued either
delirious or lethargic; and the doctor forbade everything which could painfully
excite her. Meantime, I got on as well as I could with Georgiana and Eliza.
They were very cold, indeed, at first. Eliza would sit half the day sewing,
reading, or writing, and scarcely utter a word either to me or her sister.
Georgiana would chatter nonsense to her canary bird by the hour, and take no
notice of me. But I was determined not to seem at a loss for occupation or
amusement: I had brought my drawing materials with me, and they served me for
both.
Provided with a case of
pencils, and some sheets of paper, I used to take a seat apart from them, near
the window, and busy myself in sketching fancy vignettes, representing any
scene that happened momentarily to shape itself in the ever-shifting
kaleidoscope of imagination: a glimpse of sea between two rocks; the rising
moon, and a ship crossing its disk; a group of reeds and water-flags, and a
naiad’s head, crowned with lotus-flowers, rising out of them; an elf sitting in
a hedge-sparrow’s nest, under a wreath of hawthorn-bloom.
One morning I fell to
sketching a face: what sort of a face it was to be, I did not care or know. I
took a soft black pencil, gave it a broad point, and worked away. Soon I had
traced on the paper a broad and prominent forehead and a square lower outline
of visage: that contour gave me pleasure; my fingers proceeded actively to fill
it with features. Strongly-marked horizontal eyebrows must be traced under that
brow; then followed, naturally, a well-defined nose, with a straight ridge and
full nostrils; then a flexible-looking mouth, by no means narrow; then a firm
chin, with a decided cleft down the middle of it: of course, some black
whiskers were wanted, and some jetty hair, tufted on the temples, and waved
above the forehead. Now for the eyes: I had left them to the last, because they
required the most careful working. I drew them large; I shaped them well: the
eyelashes I traced long and sombre; the irids lustrous and large. "Good!
but not quite the thing," I thought, as I surveyed the effect: "they
want more force and spirit"; and I wrought the shades blacker, that the
lights might flash more brilliantly -- a happy touch or two secured success.
There, I had a friend’s face under my gaze; and what did it signify that those
young ladies turned their backs on me? I looked at it; I smiled at the speaking
likeness: I was absorbed and content.
"Is that a
portrait of some one you know?" asked Eliza, who had approached me
unnoticed. I responded that it was merely a fancy head, and hurried it beneath
the other sheets. Of course, I lied: it was, in fact, a very faithful
representation of Mr. Rochester. But what was that to her, or to any one but
myself? Georgiana also advanced to look. The other drawings pleased her much,
but she called that "an ugly man." They both seemed surprised at my
skill. I offered to sketch their portraits; and each, in turn, sat for a pencil
outline. Then Georgiana produced her album. I promised to contribute a
water-colour drawing: this put her at once into good humour. She proposed a
walk in the grounds. Before we had been out two hours, we were deep in a
confidential conversation: she had favoured me with a description of the
brilliant winter she had spent in London two seasons ago -- of the admiration
she had there excited -- the attention she had received; and I even got hints
of the titled conquest she had made. In the course of the afternoon and evening
these hints were enlarged on: various soft conversations were reported, and
sentimental scenes represented; and, in short, a volume of a novel of fashionable
life was that day improvised by her for my benefit. The communications were
renewed from day to day: they always ran on the same theme -- herself, her
loves, and woes. It was strange she never once adverted either to her mother’s
illness, or her brother’s death, or the present gloomy state of the family
prospects. Her mind seemed wholly taken up with reminiscences of past gaiety,
and aspirations after dissipations to come. She passed about five minutes each
day in her mother’s sick-room, and no more.
Eliza still spoke
little: she had evidently no time to talk. I never saw a busier person than she
seemed to be; yet it was difficult to say what she did: or rather, to discover
any result of her diligence. She had an alarm to call her up early. I know not
how she occupied herself before breakfast, but after that meal she divided her
time into regular portions, and each hour had its allotted task. Three times a
day she studied a little book, which I found, on inspection, was a Common
Prayer Book. I asked her once what was the great attraction of that volume, and
she said, "the Rubric." Three hours she gave to stitching, with gold
thread, the border of a square crimson cloth, almost large enough for a carpet.
In answer to my inquiries after the use of this article, she informed me it was
a covering for the altar of a new church lately erected near Gateshead. Two
hours she devoted to her diary; two to working by herself in the
kitchen-garden; and one to the regulation of her accounts. She seemed to want
no company; no conversation. I believe she was happy in her way: this routine
sufficed for her; and nothing annoyed her so much as the occurrence of any
incident which forced her to vary its clockwork regularity.
She told me one
evening, when more disposed to be communicative than usual, that John’s
conduct, and the threatened ruin of the family, had been a source of profound
affliction to her: but she had now, she said, settled her mind, and formed her
resolution. Her own fortune she had taken care to secure; and when her mother
died, -- and it was wholly improbable, she tranquilly remarked, that she should
either recover or linger long, -- she would execute a long-cherished project:
seek a retirement where punctual habits would be permanently secured from disturbance,
and place safe barriers between herself and a frivolous world. I asked if
Georgiana would accompany her.
"Of course not.
Georgiana and she had nothing in common: they never had had. She would not be
burdened with her society for any consideration. Georgiana should take her own
course; and she, Eliza, would take hers."
Georgiana, when not
unburdening her heart to me, spent most of her time in lying on the sofa,
fretting about the dulness of the house, and wishing over and over again that
her aunt Gibson would send her an invitation up to town. "It would be so
much better," she said, "if she could only get out of the way for a
month or two, till all was over." I did not ask what she meant by
"all being over," but I suppose she referred to the expected decease
of her mother and the gloomy sequel of funeral rites. Eliza generally took no
more notice of her sister’s indolence and complaints than if no such murmuring,
lounging object had been before her. One day, however, as she put away her
account-book and unfolded her embroidery, she suddenly took her up thus: --
"Georgiana, a more
vain and absurd animal than you was certainly never allowed to cumber the
earth. You had no right to be born, for you make no use of life. Instead of
living for, in, and with yourself, as a reasonable being ought, you seek only
to fasten your feebleness on some other person’s strength: if no one can be
found willing to burden her or himself with such a fat, weak, puffy, useless
thing, you cry out that you are ill-treated, neglected, miserable. Then, too,
existence for you must be a scene of continual change and excitement, or else
the world is a dungeon: you must be admired, you must be courted, you must be
flattered -- you must have music, dancing, and society -- or you languish, you
die away. Have you no sense to devise a system which will make you independent
of all efforts, and all wills, but your own? Take one day; share it into
sections; to each section apportion its task: leave no stray unemployed
quarters of an hour, ten minutes, five minutes, include all; do each piece of
business in its turn with method, with rigid regularity. The day will close
almost before you are aware it has begun; and you are indebted to no one for
helping you to get rid of one vacant moment: you have had to seek no one’s
company, conversation, sympathy forbearance; you have lived, in short, as an
independent being ought to do. Take this advice: the first and last I shall
offer you; then you will not want me or any one else, happen what may. Neglect
it -- go on as heretofore, craving, whining, and idling -- and suffer the
results of your idiocy, however bad and insufferable they may be. I tell you
this plainly; and listen: for though I shall no more repeat what I am now about
to say, I shall steadily act on it. After my mother’s death, I wash my hands of
you: from the day her coffin is carried to the vault in Gateshead Church, you
and I will be as separate as if we had never known each other. You need not
think that because we chanced to be born of the same parents, I shall suffer
you to fasten me down by even the feeblest claim: I can tell you this -- if the
whole human race, ourselves excepted, were swept away, and we two stood alone
on the earth, I would leave you in the old world, and betake myself to the
new."
She closed her lips.
"You might have
spared yourself the trouble of delivering that tirade," answered
Georgiana. "Everybody knows you are the most selfish, heartless creature
in existence: and I know your spiteful hatred towards me: I have had a specimen
of it before in the trick you played me about Lord Edwin Vere: you could not
bear me to be raised above you, to have a title, to be received into circles
where you dare not show your face, and so you acted the spy and informer, and ruined
my prospects for ever." Georgiana took out her handkerchief and blew her
nose for an hour afterwards; Eliza sat cold, impassible, and assiduously
industrious.
True, generous feeling
is made small account of by some, but here were two natures rendered, the one
intolerably acrid, the other despicably savourless for the want of it. Feeling
without judgment is a washy draught indeed; but judgment untempered by feeling
is too bitter and husky a morsel for human deglutition.
It was a wet and windy
afternoon: Georgiana had fallen asleep on the sofa over the perusal of a novel;
Eliza was gone to attend a saint’s-day service at the new church -- for in
matters of religion she was a rigid formalist: no weather ever prevented the
punctual discharge of what she considered her devotional duties; fair or foul,
she went to church thrice every Sunday, and as often on week-days as there were
prayers.
I bethought myself to
go upstairs and see how the dying woman sped, who lay there almost unheeded:
the very servants paid her but a remittent attention: the hired nurse, being
little looked after, would slip out of the room whenever she could. Bessie was
faithful; but she had her own family to mind, and could only come occasionally
to the hall. I found the sick-room unwatched, as I had expected: no nurse was
there; the patient lay still, and seemingly lethargic; her livid face sunk in
the pillows: the fire was dying in the grate. I renewed the fuel, re-arranged
the bedclothes, gazed awhile on her who could not now gaze on me, and then I
moved away to the window.
The rain beat strongly
against the panes, the wind blew tempestuously: "One lies there," I
thought, "who will soon be beyond the war of earthly elements. Whither
will that spirit -- now struggling to quit its material tenement -- flit when
at length released?"
In pondering the great
mystery, I thought of Helen Burns, recalled her dying words -- her faith -- her
doctrine of the equality of disembodied souls. I was still listening in thought
to her well-remembered tones -- still picturing her pale and spiritual aspect,
her wasted face and sublime gaze, as she lay on her placid deathbed, and
whispered her longing to be restored to her divine Father’s bosom -- when a
feeble voice murmured from the couch behind: "Who is that?"
I knew Mrs. Reed had
not spoken for days: was she reviving? I went up to her.
"It is I, aunt
Reed."
"Who -- I?"
was her answer. "Who are you?" looking at me with surprise and a sort
of alarm, but still not wildly. "You are quite a stranger to me -- where
is Bessie?"
"She is at the
lodge, aunt."
"Aunt!" she
repeated. "Who calls me Aunt? You are not one of the Gibsons; and yet I
know you -- that face, and the eyes and forehead, are quite familiar to me: you
are like -- why, you are like Jane Eyre!"
I said nothing: I was
afraid of occasioning some shock by declaring my identity.
"Yet," said
she, "I am afraid it is a mistake: my thoughts deceive me. I wished to see
Jane Eyre, and I fancy a likeness where none exists: besides, in eight years
she must be so changed." I now gently assured her that I was the person
she supposed and desired me to be: and seeing that I was understood, and that
her senses were quite collected, I explained how Bessie had sent her husband to
fetch me from Thornfield.
"I am very ill, I
know," she said ere long. "I was trying to turn myself a few minutes
since, and find I cannot move a limb. It is as well I should ease my mind
before I die: what we think little of in health, burdens us at such an hour as
the present is to me. Is the nurse here? or is there no one in the room but
you?"
I assured her we were
alone.
"Well, I have
twice done you a wrong which I regret now. One was in breaking the promise which
I gave my husband to bring you up as my own child; the other --" she
stopped. "After all, it is of no great importance, perhaps," she
murmured to herself: "and then I may get better; and to humble myself so
to her is painful."
She made an effort to alter
her position, but failed: her face changed; she seemed to experience some
inward sensation -- the precursor, perhaps, of the last pang.
"Well, I must get
it over. Eternity is before me: I had better tell her. -- Go to my
dressing-case, open it, and take out a letter you will see there."
I obeyed her
directions. "Read the letter," she said.
It was short, and thus
conceived: --
"MADAM, "Will
you have the goodness to send me the address of my niece, Jane Eyre, and to
tell me how she is? It is my intention to write shortly and desire her to come
to me at Madeira. Providence has blessed my endeavours to secure a competency;
and as I am unmarried and childless, I wish to adopt her during my life, and
bequeath her at my death whatever I may have to leave. "I am, Madam,
&c. &c. "JOHN EYRE, Madeira."
It was dated three
years back.
"Why did I never
hear of this?" I asked.
"Because I
disliked you too fixedly and thoroughly ever to lend a hand in lifting you to
prosperity. I could not forget your conduct to me, Jane -- the fury with which
you once turned on me; the tone in which you declared you abhorred me the worst
of anybody in the world; the unchildlike look and voice with which you affirmed
that the very thought of me made you sick, and asserted that I had treated you
with miserable cruelty. I could not forget my own sensations when you thus
started up and poured out the venom of your mind: I felt fear as if an animal
that I had struck or pushed had looked up at me with human eyes and cursed me in
a man’s voice. -- Bring me some water! Oh, make haste!"
"Dear Mrs.
Reed," said I, as I offered her the draught she required, "think no
more of all this, let it pass away from your mind. Forgive me for my passionate
language: I was a child then; eight, nine years have passed since that
day."
She heeded nothing of
what I said; but when she had tasted the water and drawn breath, she went on
thus: --
"I tell you I
could not forget it; and I took my revenge: for you to be adopted by your
uncle, and placed in a state of ease and comfort, was what I could not endure.
I wrote to him; I said I was sorry for his disappointment, but Jane Eyre was
dead: she had died of typhus fever at Lowood. Now act as you please: write and
contradict my assertion -- expose my falsehood as soon as you like. You were
born, I think, to be my torment: my last hour is racked by the recollection of
a deed which, but for you, I should never have been tempted to commit."
"If you could but
be persuaded to think no more of it, aunt, and to regard me with kindness and
forgiveness --"
"You have a very
bad disposition," said she, "and one to this day I feel it impossible
to understand: how for nine years you could be patient and quiescent under any
treatment, and in the tenth break out all fire and violence, I can never
comprehend."
"My disposition is
not so bad as you think: I am passionate, but not vindictive. Many a time, as a
little child, I should have been glad to love you if you would have let me; and
I long earnestly to be reconciled to you now: kiss me, aunt."
I approached my cheek
to her lips: she would not touch it. She said I oppressed her by leaning over
the bed, and again demanded water. As I laid her down -- for I raised her and
supported her on my arm while she drank -- I covered her ice-cold and clammy
hand with mine: the feeble fingers shrank from my touch -- the glazing eyes
shunned my gaze.
"Love me, then, or
hate me, as you will," I said at last, "you have my full and free
forgiveness: ask now for God’s, and be at peace."
Poor, suffering woman!
it was too late for her to make now the effort to change her habitual frame of
mind: living, she had ever hated me -- dying, she must hate me still.
The nurse now entered,
and Bessie followed. I yet lingered half an hour longer, hoping to see some
sign of amity: but she gave none. She was fast relapsing into stupor; nor did
her mind again rally: at twelve o’clock that night she died. I was not present
to close her eyes, nor were either of her daughters. They came to tell us the
next morning that all was over. She was by that time laid out. Eliza and I went
to look at her: Georgiana, who had burst out into loud weeping, said she dared
not go. There was stretched Sarah Reed’s once robust and active frame, rigid
and still: her eye of flint was covered with its cold lid; her brow and strong
traits wore yet the impress of her inexorable soul. A strange and solemn object
was that corpse to me. I gazed on it with gloom and pain: nothing soft, nothing
sweet, nothing pitying, or hopeful, or subduing did it inspire; only a grating
anguish for her woes -- not my loss -- and a sombre tearless dismay at the
fearfulness of death in such a form.
Eliza surveyed her
parent calmly. After a silence of some minutes she observed, --
"With her constitution
she should have lived to a good old age: her life was shortened by
trouble." And then a spasm constricted her mouth for an instant: as it
passed away she turned and left the room, and so did I. Neither of us had dropt
a tear.
MR. ROCHESTER had given
me but one week’s leave of absence: yet a month elapsed before I quitted
Gateshead. I wished to leave immediately after the funeral, but Georgiana
entreated me to stay till she could get off to London, whither she was now at
last invited by her uncle, Mr. Gibson, who had come down to direct his sister’s
interment and settle the family affairs. Georgiana said she dreaded being left
alone with Eliza; from her she got neither sympathy in her dejection, support
in her fears, nor aid in her preparations; so I bore with her feeble-minded
wailings and selfish lamentations as well as I could, and did my best in sewing
for her and packing her dresses. It is true, that while I worked, she would
idle; and I thought to myself, "If you and I were destined to live always
together, cousin, we would commence matters on a different footing. I should
not settle tamely down into being the forbearing party; I should assign you
your share of labour, and compel you to accomplish it, or else it should be left
undone: I should insist, also, on your keeping some of those drawling,
half-insincere complaints hushed in your own breast. It is only because our
connection happens to be very transitory, and comes at a peculiarly mournful
season, that I consent thus to render it so patient and compliant on my
part."
At last I saw Georgiana
off; but now it was Eliza’s turn to request me to stay another week. Her plans
required all her time and attention, she said; she was about to depart for some
unknown bourne; and all day long she stayed in her own room, her door bolted
within, filling trunks, emptying drawers, burning papers, and holding no
communication with any one. She wished me to look after the house, to see
callers, and answer notes of condolence.
One morning she told me
I was at liberty. "And," she added, "I am obliged to you for
your valuable services and discreet conduct! There is some difference between
living with such an one as you and with Georgiana: you perform your own part in
life and burden no one. To-morrow," she continued, "I set out for the
Continent. I shall take up my abode in a religious house near Lisle -- a
nunnery you would call it; there I shall be quiet and unmolested. I shall
devote myself for a time to the examination of the Roman Catholic dogmas, and
to a careful study of the workings of their system: if I find it to be, as I
half suspect it is, the one best calculated to ensure the doing of all things
decently and in order, I shall embrace the tenets of Rome and probably take the
veil."
I neither expressed
surprise at this resolution nor attempted to dissuade her from it. "The
vocation will fit you to a hair," I thought: "much good may it do
you!"
When we parted, she
said: "Good-bye, cousin Jane Eyre; I wish you well: you have some sense."
I then returned:
"You are not without sense, cousin Eliza; but what you have, I suppose, in
another year will be walled up alive in a French convent. However, it is not my
business, and so it suits you, I don’t much care."
"You are in the
right," said she; and with these words we each went our separate way. As I
shall not have occasion to refer either to her or her sister again, I may as
well mention here, that Georgiana made an advantageous match with a wealthy
worn-out man of fashion, and that Eliza actually took the veil, and is at this
day superior of the convent where she passed the period of her novitiate, and
which she endowed with her fortune.
How people feel when
they are returning home from an absence, long or short, I did not know: I had
never experienced the sensation. I had known what it was to come back to
Gateshead when a child after a long walk, to be scolded for looking cold or
gloomy; and later, what it was to come back from church to Lowood, to long for
a plenteous meal and a good fire, and to be unable to get either. Neither of
these returnings was very pleasant or desirable: no magnet drew me to a given
point, increasing in its strength of attraction the nearer I came. The return
to Thornfield was yet to be tried.
My journey seemed
tedious -- very tedious: fifty miles one day, a night spent at an inn; fifty
miles the next day. During the first twelve hours I thought of Mrs. Reed in her
last moments; I saw her disfigured and discoloured face, and heard her
strangely altered voice. I mused on the funeral day, the coffin, the hearse,
the black train of tenants and servants -- few was the number of relatives --
the gaping vault, the silent church, the solemn service. Then I thought of
Eliza and Georgiana; I beheld one the cynosure of a ball-room, the other the
inmate of a convent cell; and I dwelt on and analysed their separate
peculiarities of person and character. The evening arrival at the great town of
---- scattered these thoughts; night gave them quite another turn: laid down on
my traveller’s bed, I left reminiscence for anticipation.
I was going back to
Thornfield: but how long was I to stay there? Not long; of that I was sure. I
had heard from Mrs. Fairfax in the interim of my absence: the party at the hall
was dispersed; Mr. Rochester had left for London three weeks ago, but he was
then expected to return in a fortnight. Mrs. Fairfax surmised that he was gone
to make arrangements for his wedding, as he had talked of purchasing a new
carriage: she said the idea of his marrying Miss Ingram still seemed strange to
her; but from what everybody said, and from what she had herself seen, she
could no longer doubt that the event would shortly take place. "You would
be strangely incredulous if you did doubt it," was my mental comment.
"I don’t doubt it."
The question followed,
"Where was I to go?" I dreamt of Miss Ingram all the night: in a
vivid morning dream I saw her closing the gates of Thornfield against me and
pointing me out another road; and Mr. Rochester looked on with his arms folded
-- smiling sardonically, as it seemed, at both her and me.
I had not notified to
Mrs. Fairfax the exact day of my return; for I did not wish either car or
carriage to meet me at Millcote. I proposed to walk the distance quietly by
myself; and very quietly, after leaving my box in the ostler’s care, did I slip
away from the George Inn, about six o’clock of a June evening, and take the old
road to Thornfield: a road which lay chiefly through fields, and was now little
frequented.
It was not a bright or
splendid summer evening, though fair and soft: the haymakers were at work all
along the road; and the sky, though far from cloudless, was such as promised
well for the future: its blue -- where blue was visible -- was mild and
settled, and its cloud strata high and thin. The west, too, was warm: no watery
gleam chilled it -- it seemed as if there was a fire lit, an altar burning
behind its screen of marbled vapour, and out of apertures shone a golden
redness.
I felt glad as the road
shortened before me: so glad that I stopped once to ask myself what that joy
meant: and to remind reason that it was not to my home I was going, or to a
permanent resting-place, or to a place where fond friends looked out for me and
waited my arrival. "Mrs. Fairfax will smile you a calm welcome, to be
sure," said I; "and little Adèle will clap her hands and jump to see
you: but you know very well you are thinking of another than they, and that he
is not thinking of you."
But what is so
headstrong as youth? What so blind as inexperience? These affirmed that it was
pleasure enough to have the privilege of again looking on Mr. Rochester,
whether he looked on me or not; and they added -- "Hasten! hasten! be with
him while you may: but a few more days or weeks, at most, and you are parted
from him for ever!" And then I strangled a new-born agony -- a deformed
thing which I could not persuade myself to own and rear -- and ran on.
They are making hay,
too, in Thornfield meadows: or rather, the labourers are just quitting their
work, and returning home with their rakes on their shoulders, now, at the hour
I arrive. I have but a field or two to traverse, and then I shall cross the
road and reach the gates. How full the hedges are of roses! But I have no time
to gather any; I want to be at the house. I passed a tall briar, shooting leafy
and flowery branches across the path; I see the narrow stile with stone steps;
and I see -- Mr. Rochester sitting there, a book and a pencil in his hand; he
is writing.
Well, he is not a ghost;
yet every nerve I have is unstrung: for a moment I am beyond my own mastery.
What does it mean? I did not think I should tremble in this way when I saw him,
or lose my voice or the power of motion in his presence. I will go back as soon
as I can stir: I need not make an absolute fool of myself. I know another way
to the house. It does not signify if I knew twenty ways; for he has seen me.
"Hillo!" he
cries; and he puts up his book and his pencil. "There you are! Come on, if
you please."
I suppose I do come on;
though in what fashion I know not; being scarcely cognisant of my movements,
and solicitous only to appear calm; and, above all, to control the working
muscles of my face -- which I feel rebel insolently against my will, and
struggle to express what I had resolved to conceal. But I have a veil -- it is
down: I may make shift yet to behave with decent composure.
"And this is Jane
Eyre? Are you coming from Millcote, and on foot? Yes -- just one of your
tricks: not to send for a carriage, and come clattering over street and road
like a common mortal, but to steal into the vicinage of your home along with
twilight, just as if you were a dream or a shade. What the deuce have you done
with yourself this last month?"
"I have been with
my aunt, Sir, who is dead."
"A true Janian
reply! Good angels be my guard. She comes from the other world- from the abode
of people who are dead; and tells me so when she meets me alone here in the
gloaming! If I dared, I’d touch you, to see if you are substance or shadow, you
elf! -- but I’d as soon offer to take hold of a blue ignis fatuus light in a
marsh. Truant! truant!" he added, when he had paused an instant.
"Absent from me a whole month, and forgetting me quite, I’ll be
sworn!"
I knew there would be
pleasure in meeting my master again, even though broken by the fear that he was
so soon to cease to be my master, and by the knowledge that I was nothing to
him: but there was ever in Mr. Rochester (so at least I thought) such a wealth
of the power of communicating happiness, that to taste but of the crumbs he
scattered to stray and stranger birds like me, was to feast genially. His last
words were balm: they seemed to imply vthat it imported something to him
whether I forgot him or not. And he had spoken of Thornfield as my home --
would that it were my home!
He did not leave the
stile, and I hardly liked to ask to go by. I inquired soon if he had not been
to London.
"Yes; I suppose
you found that out by second-sight."
"Mrs. Fairfax told
me in a letter."
"And did she
inform you what I went to do?"
"Oh, yes, Sir!
Everybody knew your errand."
"You must see the
carriage, Jane, and tell me if you don’t think it will suit Mrs. Rochester
exactly; and whether she won’t look like Queen Boadicea, leaning back against
those purple cushions. I wish, Jane, I were a trifle better adapted to match
with her externally. Tell me now, fairy as you are, -- can’t you give me a
charm, or a philter, or something of that sort, to make me a handsome
man?"
"It would be past
the power of magic, Sir"; and, in thought, I added, "A loving eye is
all the charm needed: to such you are handsome enough; or rather your sternness
has a power beyond beauty."
Mr. Rochester had
sometimes read my unspoken thoughts with an acumen to me incomprehensible: in
the present instance he took no notice of my abrupt vocal response; but he
smiled at me with a certain smile he had of his own, and which he used but on
rare occasions. He seemed to think it too good for common purposes: it was the
real sunshine of feeling -- he shed it over me now.
"Pass,
Janet," said he, making room for me to cross the stile: "go up home,
and stay your weary little wandering feet at a friend’s threshold."
All I had now to do was
to obey him in silence: no need for me to colloquise further. I got over the
stile without a word, and meant to leave him calmly. An impulse held me fast,
-- a force turned me round. I said -- or something in me said for me, and in
spite of me: --
"Thank you, Mr.
Rochester, for your great kindness. I am strangely glad to get back again to
you: and wherever you are is my home, -- my only home."
I walked on so fast
that even he could hardly have overtaken me had he tried. Little Adèle was half
wild with delight when she saw me. Mrs. Fairfax received me with her usual
plain friendliness. Leah smiled, and even Sophie bid me "bon soir"
with glee. This was very pleasant; there is no happiness like that of being
loved by your fellow-creatures, and feeling that your presence is an addition
to their comfort.
I that evening shut my
eyes resolutely against the future: I stopped my ears against the voice that
kept warning me of near separation and coming grief. When tea was over and Mrs.
Fairfax had taken her knitting, and I had assumed a low seat near her, and Adèle,
kneeling on the carpet, had nestled close up to me, and a sense of mutual
affection seemed to surround us with a ring of golden peace, I uttered a silent
prayer that we might not be parted far or soon; but when, as we thus sat, Mr.
Rochester entered, unannounced, and looking at us, seemed to take pleasure in
the spectacle of a group so amicable -- when he said he supposed the old lady
was all right now that she had got her adopted daughter back again, and added
that he saw Adèle was "prête à croquer sa petite maman Anglaise" -- I
half ventured to hope that he would, even after his marriage, keep us together
somewhere under the shelter of his protection, and not quite exiled from the
sunshine of his presence.
A fortnight of dubious
calm succeeded my return to Thornfield-Hall. Nothing was said of the master’s
marriage, and I saw no preparation going on for such an event. Almost every day
I asked Mrs. Fairfax if she had yet heard anything decided: her answer was
always in the negative. Once she said she had actually put the question to Mr.
Rochester as to when he was going to bring his bride home; but he had answered
her only by a joke and one of his queer looks, and she could not tell what to
make of him.
One thing specially
surprised me, and that was, there were no journeyings backward and forward, no
visits to Ingram Park: to be sure it was twenty miles off, on the borders of
another county; but what was that distance to an ardent lover? To so practised
and indefatigable a horseman as Mr. Rochester, it would be but a morning’s
ride. I began to cherish hopes I had no right to conceive: that the match was
broken off; that rumour had been mistaken; that one or both parties had changed
their minds. I used to look at my master’s face to see if it were sad or
fierce; but I could not remember the time when it had been so uniformly clear
of clouds or evil feelings. If, in the moments I and my pupil spent with him, I
lacked spirits and sank into inevitable dejection, he became even gay. Never
had he called me more frequently to his presence; never been kinder to me when
there -- and, alas! never had I loved him so well.
A SPLENDID Midsummer
shone over England: skies so pure, suns so radiant as were then seen in long
succession, seldom favour even singly, our wave-girt land. It was as if a band
of Italian days had come from the South, like a flock of glorious passenger
birds, and lighted to rest them on the cliffs of Albion. The hay was all got
in; the fields round Thornfield were green and shorn; the roads white and
baked; the trees were in their dark prime; hedge and wood, full-leaved and
deeply tinted, contrasted well with the sunny hue of the cleared meadows
between.
On Midsummer-eve, Adèle,
weary with gathering wild strawberries in Hay Lane half the day, had gone to
bed with the sun. I watched her drop asleep, and when I left her, I sought the
garden.
It was now the sweetest
hour of the twenty-four: -- "Day its fervid fires had wasted," and
dew fell cool on panting plain and scorched summit. Where the sun had gone down
in simple state -- pure of the pomp of clouds -- spread a solemn purple,
burning with the light of red jewel and furnace flame at one point, on one
hill-peak, and extending high and wide, soft and still softer, over half
heaven. The east had its own charm of fine deep blue, and its own modest gem, a
rising and solitary star: soon it would boast the moon; but she was yet beneath
the horizon.
I walked a while on the
pavement; but a subtle, well-known scent -- that of a cigar -- stole from some
window; I saw the library casement open a hand-breadth; I knew I might be
watched thence; so I went apart into the orchard. No nook in the grounds more
sheltered and more Eden-like; it was full of trees, it bloomed with flowers: a
very high wall shut it out from the court, on one side; on the other, a beech
avenue screened it from the lawn. At the bottom was a sunk fence; its sole
separation from lonely fields: a winding walk, bordered with laurels and
terminating in a giant horse-chestnut, circled at the base by a seat, led down
to the fence. Here one could wander unseen. While such honey-dew fell, such
silence reigned, such gloaming gathered, I felt as if I could haunt such shade
for ever; but in threading the flower and fruit parterres at the upper part of
the enclosure, enticed there by the light the now rising moon cast on this more
open quarter, my step is stayed -- not by sound, not by sight, but once more by
a warning fragrance.
Sweet-briar and
southernwood, jasmine, pink, and rose have long been yielding their evening
sacrifice of incense: this new scent is neither of shrub nor flower; it is -- I
know it well -- it is Mr. Rochester’s cigar. I look round and I listen. I see
trees laden with ripening fruit. I hear a nightingale warbling in a wood half a
mile off; no moving form is visible, no coming step audible; but that perfume
increases: I must flee. I make for the wicket leading to the shrubbery, and I
see Mr. Rochester entering. I step aside into the ivy recess; he will not stay
long: he will soon return whence he came, and if I sit still he will never see
me.
But no -- eventide is
as pleasant to him as to me, and this antique garden as attractive; and he
strolls on, now lifting the gooseberry-tree branches to look at the fruit,
large as plums, with which they are laden; now taking a ripe cherry from the
wall; now stooping towards a knot of flowers, either to inhale their fragrance
or to admire the dew-beads on their petals. A great moth goes humming by me; it
alights on a plant at Mr. Rochester’s foot: he sees it, and bends to examine
it.
"Now, he has his
back towards me," thought I, "and he is occupied too; perhaps, if I
walk softly, I can slip away unnoticed."
I trode on an edging of
turf that the crackle of the pebbly gravel might not betray me: he was standing
among the beds at a yard or two distant from where I had to pass; the moth
apparently engaged him. "I shall get by very well," I meditated. As I
crossed his shadow, thrown long over the garden by the moon, not yet risen
high, he said quietly, without turning: --
"Jane, come and
look at this fellow."
I had made no noise: he
had not eyes behind -- could his shadow feel? I started at first, and then I
approached him.
"Look at his
wings," said he, "he reminds me rather of a West Indian insect; one
does not often see so large and gay a night-rover in England; there! he is
flown."
The moth roamed away. I
was sheepishly retreating also; but Mr. Rochester followed me, and when we
reached the wicket, he said: --
"Turn back: on so
lovely a night it is a shame to sit in the house; and surely no one can wish to
go to bed while sunset is thus at meeting with moonrise."
It is one of my faults,
that though my tongue is sometimes prompt enough at an answer, there are times
when it sadly fails me in framing an excuse; and always the lapse occurs at
some crisis, when a facile word or plausible pretext is specially wanted to get
me out of painful embarrassment. I did not like to walk at this hour alone with
Mr. Rochester in the shadowy orchard; but I could not find a reason to allege
for leaving him. I followed with lagging step, and thoughts busily bent on
discovering a means of extrication; but he himself looked so composed and so
grave also, I became ashamed of feeling any confusion: the evil -- if evil
existent or prospective there was -- seemed to lie with me only; his mind was
unconscious and quiet.
"Jane," he
recommenced, as we entered the laurel-walk, and slowly strayed down in the
direction of the sunk fence and the horse-chestnut, "Thornfield is a
pleasant place in summer, is it not?"
"Yes, Sir."
"You must have
become in some degree attached to the house, -- you, who have an eye for
natural beauties, and a good deal of the organ of Adhesiveness?"
"I am attached to
it, indeed."
"And though I don’t
comprehend how it is, I perceive you have acquired a degree of regard for that
foolish little child Adèle, too; and even for simple dame Fairfax?"
"Yes, Sir; in
different ways, I have an affection for both."
"And would be
sorry to part with them?"
"Yes."
"Pity!" he
said, and sighed and paused. "It is always the way of events in this
life," he continued presently: "no sooner have you got settled in a
pleasant resting-place, than a voice calls out to you to rise and move on, for
the hour of repose is expired."
"Must I move on,
Sir?" I asked. "Must I leave Thornfield?"
"I believe you
must, Jane. I am sorry, Janet, but I believe indeed you must."
This was a blow: but I
did not let it prostrate me.
"Well, Sir, I
shall be ready when the order to march comes."
"It is come now --
I must give it to-night."
"Then you are
going to be married, Sir?"
"Ex-act-ly --
pre-cise-ly: with your usual acuteness, you have hit the nail straight on the
head."
"Soon, Sir?"
"Very soon, my --
that is, Miss Eyre: and you’ll remember, Jane, the first time I, or Rumour,
plainly intimated to you that it was my intention to put my old bachelor’s neck
into the sacred noose, to enter into the holy estate of matrimony -- to take
Miss Ingram to my bosom, in short (she’s an extensive armful: but that’s not to
the point -- one can’t have too much of such a very excellent thing as my
beautiful Blanche): well, as I was saying -- listen to me, Jane! You’re not
turning your head to look after more moths, are you? That was only a
lady-clock, child, "flying away home." I wish to remind you that it
was you who first said to me, with that discretion I respect in you -- with
that foresight, prudence, and humility which befit your responsible and
dependent position -- that in case I married Miss Ingram, both you and little
Adèle had better trot forthwith. I pass over the sort of slur conveyed in this
suggestion on the character of my beloved; indeed, when you are far away,
Janet, I’ll try to forget it: I shall notice only its wisdom; which is such
that I have made it my law of action. Adèle must go to school; and you, Miss
Eyre, must get a new situation."
"Yes, Sir, I will
advertise immediately: and meantime, I suppose --" I was going to say,
"I suppose I may stay here, till I find another shelter to betake myself
to:" but I stopped, feeling it would not do to risk a long sentence, for
my voice was not quite under command.
"In about a month
I hope to be a bridegroom," continued Mr. Rochester; "and in the
interim, I shall myself look out for employment and an asylum for you."
"Thank you, Sir; I
am sorry to give --"
"Oh, no need to
apologise! I consider that when a dependant does her duty as well as you have
done yours, she has a sort of claim upon her employer for any little assistance
he can conveniently render her; indeed I have already, through my future
mother-in-law, heard of a place that I think will suit: it is to undertake the
education of the five daughters of Mrs. Dionysius O’Gall of Bitternutt Lodge,
Connaught, Ireland. You’ll like Ireland, I think: they’re such warmhearted
people there, they say."
"It is a long way
off, Sir."
"No matter -- a
girl of your sense will not object to the voyage or the distance."
"Not the voyage,
but the distance: and then the sea is a barrier --"
"From what,
Jane?"
"From England and
from Thornfield: and --"
"Well?"
"From you,
Sir."
I said this almost
involuntarily, and, with as little sanction of free will, my tears gushed out.
I did not cry so as to be heard, however; I avoided sobbing. The thought of
Mrs. O’Gall and Bitternutt Lodge struck cold to my heart; and colder the
thought of all the brine and foam, destined, as it seemed, to rush between me
and the master at whose side I now walked, and coldest the remembrance of the
wider ocean -- wealth, caste, custom intervened between me and what I naturally
and inevitably loved.
"It is a long
way," I again said.
"It is, to be
sure; and when you get to Bitternutt Lodge, Connaught, Ireland, I shall never
see you again, Jane: that’s morally certain. I never go over to Ireland, not
having myself much of a fancy for the country. We have been good friends, Jane;
have we not?"
"Yes, Sir."
"And when friends
are on the eve of separation, they like to spend the little time that remains
to them close to each other. Come! we’ll talk over the voyage and the parting
quietly half an hour or so, while the stars enter into their shining life up in
heaven yonder: here is the chestnut tree: here is the bench at its old roots.
Come, we will sit there in peace to-night, though we should never more be
destined to sit there together." He seated me and himself.
"It is a long way
to Ireland, Janet, and I am sorry to send my little friend on such weary
travels: but if I can’t do better, how is it to be helped? Are you anything
akin to me, do you think, Jane?"
I could risk no sort of
answer by this time: my heart was still.
"Because," he
said, "I sometimes have a queer feeling with regard to you -- especially
when you are near me, as now: it is as if I had a string somewhere under my
left ribs, tightly and inextricably knotted to a similar string situated in the
corresponding quarter of your little frame. And if that boisterous channel and
two hundred miles or so of land come broad between us, I am afraid that cord of
communion will be snapt; and then I’ve a nervous notion I should take to
bleeding inwardly. As for you, -- you’d forget me."
"That I never
should, Sir: you know --" Impossible to proceed.
"Jane, do you hear
that nightingale singing in the wood? Listen!"
In listening, I sobbed
convulsively; for I could repress what I endured no longer; I was obliged to
yield, and I was shaken from head to foot with acute distress. When I did
speak, it was only to express an impetuous wish that I had never been born, or
never come to Thornfield.
"Because you are
sorry to leave it?"
The vehemence of
emotion, stirred by grief and love within me, was claiming mastery, and
struggling for full sway, and asserting a right to predominate, to overcome, to
live, rise, and reign at last: yes, -- and to speak.
"I grieve to leave
Thornfield: I love Thornfield: -- I love it, because I have lived in it a full
and delightful life, -- momentarily at least. I have not been trampled on. I
have not been petrified. I have not been buried with inferior minds, and
excluded from every glimpse of communion with what is bright and energetic and
high. I have talked, face to face, with what I reverence, with what I delight
in, -- with an original, a vigorous, an expanded mind. I have known you, Mr.
Rochester; and it strikes me with terror and anguish to feel I absolutely must
be torn from you for ever. I see the necessity of departure; and it is like
looking on the necessity of death."
"Where do you see
the necessity?" he asked suddenly.
"Where? You, Sir,
have placed it before me."
"In what
shape?"
"In the shape of
Miss Ingram; a noble and beautiful woman, -- your bride."
"My bride! What
bride? I have no bride!"
"But you will
have."
"Yes; -- I will!
-- I will!" He set his teeth.
"Then I must go:
-- you have said it yourself."
"No: you must
stay! I swear it -- and the oath shall be kept."
"I tell you I must
go!" I retorted, roused to something like passion. "Do you think I
can stay to become nothing to you? Do you think I am an automaton? -- a machine
without feelings? and can bear to have my morsel of bread snatched from my
lips, and my drop of living water dashed from my cup? Do you think, because I
am poor, obscure, plain, and little, I am soulless and heartless? You think
wrong! -- I have as much soul as you, -- and full as much heart! And if God had
gifted me with some beauty and much wealth, I should have made it as hard for
you to leave me, as it is now for me to leave you. I am not talking to you now
through the medium of custom, conventionalities, nor even of mortal flesh; --
it is my spirit that addresses your spirit; just as if both had passed through
the grave, and we stood at God’s feet, equal, -- as we are!"
"As we are!"
repeated Mr. Rochester -- "so," he added, enclosing me in his arms,
gathering me to his breast, pressing his lips on my lips: "so, Jane!"
"Yes, so,
Sir," I rejoined: "and yet not so; for you are a married man -- or as
good as a married man, and wed to one inferior to you -- to one with whom you
have no sympathy- whom I do not believe you truly love; for I have seen and
heard you sneer at her. I would scorn such a union: therefore I am better than
you -- let me go!"
"Where, Jane? To
Ireland?"
"Yes -- to
Ireland. I have spoken my mind, and can go anywhere now."
"Jane, be still;
don’t struggle so, like a wild frantic bird that is rending its own plumage in
its desperation."
"I am no bird; and
no net ensnares me; I am a free human being with an independent will, which I
now exert to leave you."
Another effort set me
at liberty, and I stood erect before him.
"And your will
shall decide your destiny," he said: "I offer you my hand, my heart,
and a share of all my possessions."
"You play a farce,
which I merely laugh at."
"I ask you to pass
through life at my side -- to be my second self, and best earthly
companion."
"For that fate you
have already made your choice, and must abide by it."
"Jane, be still a
few moments: you are over-excited: I will be still too."
A waft of wind came
sweeping down the laurel-walk and trembled through the boughs of the chestnut:
it wandered away -- away -- to an indefinite distance -- it died. The
nightingale’s song was then the only voice of the hour: in listening to it, I
again wept. Mr. Rochester sat quiet, looking at me gently and seriously. Some
time passed before he spoke; he at last said: --
"Come to my side,
Jane, and let us explain and understand one another."
"I will never
again come to your side: I am torn away now, and cannot return."
"But, Jane, I
summon you as my wife: it is you only I intend to marry."
I was silent: I thought
he mocked me.
"Come, Jane --
come hither."
"Your bride stands
between us."
He rose, and with a
stride reached me.
"My bride is
here," he said, again drawing me to him, "because my equal is here,
and my likeness. Jane, will you marry me?"
Still I did not answer,
and still I writhed myself from his grasp: for I was still incredulous.
"Do you doubt me,
Jane?"
"Entirely."
"You have no faith
in me?"
"Not a whit."
"Am I a liar in
your eyes?" he asked passionately. "Little sceptic, you shall be
convinced. What love have I for Miss Ingram? None: and that you know. What love
has she for me? None: as I have taken pains to prove: I caused a rumour to reach
her that my fortune was not a third of what was supposed, and after that I
presented myself to see the result; it was coldness both from her and her
mother. I would not -- I could not -- marry Miss Ingram. You -- you strange,
you almost unearthly thing! -- I love as my own flesh. You -- poor and obscure,
and small and plain as you are -- I entreat to accept me as a husband."
"What, me!" I
ejaculated, beginning in his earnestness -- and especially in his incivility --
to credit his sincerity: "me who have not a friend in the world but you --
if you are my friend: not a shilling but what you have given me?"
"You, Jane. I must
have you for my own -- entirely my own. Will you be mine? Say yes,
quickly."
"Mr. Rochester,
let me look at your face: turn to the moonlight."
"Why?"
"Because I want to
read your countenance; turn!"
"There! you will
find it scarcely more legible than a crumpled, scratched page. Read on: only
make haste, for I suffer."
His face was very much
agitated and very much flushed, and there were strong workings in the features,
and strange gleams in the eyes.
"Oh, Jane, you
torture me!" he exclaimed. "With that searching and yet faithful and
generous look, you torture me!"
"How can I do
that? If you are true, and your offer real, my only feelings to you must be
gratitude and devotion -- they cannot torture."
"Gratitude!"
he ejaculated; and added wildly -- "Jane, accept me quickly. Say, Edward
-- give me my name -- Edward -- I will marry you."
"Are you in
earnest? -- Do you truly love me? -- Do you sincerely wish me to be your
wife?"
"I do; and if an
oath is necessary to satisfy you, I swear it."
"Then, Sir, I will
marry you."
"Edward -- my
little wife!"
"Dear Edward!"
"Come to me --
come to me entirely now," said he; and added, in his deepest tone,
speaking in my ear as his cheek was laid on mine, "Make my happiness -- I
will make yours."
"God pardon
me!" he subjoined ere long; "and man meddle not with me: I have her,
and will hold her."
"There is no one
to meddle, Sir. I have no kindred to interfere."
"No -- that is the
best of it," he said. And if I had loved him less I should have thought
his accent and look of exultation savage; but, sitting by him, roused from the
nightmare of parting -- called to the paradise of union -- I thought only of
the bliss given me to drink in so abundant a flow. Again and again he said,
"Are you happy, Jane?" And again and again I answered,
"Yes," After which he murmured, "It will atone -- it will atone.
Have I not found her friendless, and cold, and comfortless? Will I not guard,
and cherish, and solace her? Is there not love in my heart, and constancy in my
resolves? It will expiate at God’s tribunal. I know my Maker sanctions what I
do. For the world’s judgment -- I wash my hands thereof. For man’s opinion -- I
defy it."
But what had befallen
the night? The moon was not yet set, and we were all in shadow: I could
scarcely see my master’s face, near as I was. And what ailed the chestnut tree?
it writhed and groaned; while wind roared in the laurel walk, and came sweeping
over us.
"We must go
in," said Mr. Rochester: "the weather changes. I could have sat with
thee till morning, Jane."
"And so,"
thought I, "could I with you." I should have said so, perhaps, but a
livid, vivid spark leapt out of a cloud at which I was looking, and there was a
crack, a crash, and a close rattling peal; and I thought only of hiding my
dazzled eyes against Mr. Rochester’s shoulder.
The rain rushed down.
He hurried me up the walk, through the grounds, and into the house; but we were
quite wet before we could pass the threshold. He was taking off my shawl in the
hall, and shaking the water out of my loosened hair, when Mrs. Fairfax emerged
from her room. I did not observe her at first, nor did Mr. Rochester. The lamp
was lit. The dock was on the stroke of twelve.
"Hasten to take
off your wet things," said he; "and before you go, good-night --
good-night, my darling!"
He kissed me
repeatedly. When I looked up, on leaving his arms, there stood the widow, pale,
grave, and amazed. I only smiled at her, and ran upstairs. "Explanation
will do for another time," thought I. Still, when I reached my chamber, I
felt a pang at the idea she should even temporarily misconstrue what she had
seen. But joy soon effaced every other feeling; and loud as the wind blew, near
and deep as the thunder crashed, fierce and frequent as the lightning gleamed,
cataract-like as the rain fell during a storm of two hours’q duration, I
experienced no fear, and little awe. Mr. Rochester came thrice to my door in
the course of it, to ask if I was safe and tranquil: and that was comfort, that
was strength for anything.
Before I left my bed in
the morning, little Adèle came running in to tell me that the great
horse-chestnut at the bottom of the orchard had been struck by lightning in the
night, and half of it split away.
AS I rose and dressed,
I thought over what had happened, and wondered if it were a dream. I could not
be certain of the reality till I had seen Mr. Rochester again, and heard him
renew his words of love and promise.
While arranging my
hair, I looked at my face in the glass, and felt it was no longer plain: there
was hope in its aspect and life in its colour; and my eyes seemed as if they
had beheld the fount of fruition, and borrowed beams from the lustrous ripple.
I had often been unwilling to look at my master, because I feared he could not
be pleased at my look; but I was sure I might lift my face to his now, and not
cool his affection by its expression. I took a plain but clean and light summer
dress from my drawer and put it on: it seemed no attire had ever so well become
me, because none had I ever worn in so blissful a mood.
I was not surprised,
when I ran down into the hall, to see that a brilliant June morning had
succeeded to the tempest of the night; and to feel, through the open glass
door, the breathing of a fresh and fragrant breeze. Nature must be gladsome
when I was so happy. A beggar-woman and her little boy -- pale, ragged objects
both -- were coming up the walk, and I ran down and gave them all the money I
happened to have in my purse -- some three or four shillings: good or bad, they
must partake of my jubilee. The rooks cawed, and blither birds sang; but
nothing was so merry or so musical as my own rejoicing heart.
Mrs. Fairfax surprised
me by looking out of the window with a sad countenance, and saying gravely: --
"Miss Eyre, will you come to breakfast?" During the meal she was
quiet and cool: but I could not undeceive her then. I must wait for my master
to give explanations; and so must she. I ate what I could, and then I hastened
upstairs. I met Adèle leaving the schoolroom.
"Where are you
going? It is time for lessons."
"Mr. Rochester has
sent me away to the nursery."
"Where is
he?"
"In there,"
pointing to the apartment she had left; and I went in, and there he stood.
"Come and bid me
good-morning," said he. I gladly advanced; and it was not merely a cold
word now, or even a shake of the hand that I received, but an embrace and a
kiss. It seemed natural: it seemed genial to be so well loved, so caressed by
him.
"Jane, you look
blooming, and smiling, and pretty," said he: "truly pretty this morning.
Is this my pale, little elf? Is this my mustard-seed? This little sunny-faced
girl with the dimpled cheek and rosy lips; the satin-smooth hazel hair, and the
radiant hazel eyes?" (I had green eyes, reader; but you must excuse the
mistake: for him they were new-dyed, I suppose.)
"It is Jane Eyre,
Sir."
"Soon to be Jane
Rochester," he added: "in four weeks, Janet; not a day more. Do you
hear that?"
I did, and I could not
quite comprehend it: it made me giddy. The feeling, the announcement sent through
me, was something stronger than was consistent with joy -- something that smote
and stunned: it was, I think, almost fear.
"You blushed, and
now you are white, Jane: what is that for?"
"Because you gave
me a new name -- Jane Rochester; and it seems so strange."
"Yes, Mrs.
Rochester," said he; "young Mrs. Rochester -- Fairfax Rochester’s
girl-bride."
"It can never be,
Sir; it does not sound likely. Human beings never enjoy complete happiness in
this world. I was not born for a different destiny to the rest of my species:
to imagine such a lot befalling me is a fairy tale -- a day-dream."
"Which I can and
will realise. I shall begin to-day. This morning I wrote to my banker in London
to send me certain jewels he has in his keeping, -- heirlooms for the ladies of
Thornfield. In a day or two I hope to pour them into your lap: for every
privilege, every attention shall be yours that I would accord a peer’s
daughter, if about to marry her."
"Oh, Sir! -- never
mind jewels! I don’t like to hear them spoken of. Jewels for Jane Eyre sounds
unnatural and strange: I would rather not have them."
"I will myself put
the diamond chain round your neck, and the circlet on your forehead, -- which
it will become: for nature, at least, has stamped her patent of nobility on
this brow, Jane; and I will clasp the bracelets on these fine wrists, and load
these fairy-like fingers with rings."
"No, no, Sir!
think of other subjects, and speak of other things, and in another strain. Don’t
address me as if I were a beauty; I am your plain, Quakerish governess."
"You are a beauty
in my eyes, and a beauty just after the desire of my heart, -- delicate and
aerial."
"Puny and
insignificant, you mean. You are dreaming, Sir -- or you are sneering. For God’s
sake, don’t be ironical!"
"I will make the
world acknowledge you a beauty, too," he went on, while I really became
uneasy at the strain he had adopted, because I felt he was either deluding
himself or trying to delude me. "I will attire my Jane in satin and lace,
and she shall have roses in her hair; and I will cover the head I love best
with a priceless veil."
"And then you won’t
know me, Sir; and I shall not be your Jane Eyre any longer, but an ape in a
harlequin’s jacket, -- a jay in borrowed plumes. I would as soon see you, Mr.
Rochester, tricked out in stage-trappings, as myself clad in a court-lady’s
robe; and I don’t call you handsome, sir, though I love you most dearly: far
too dearly to flatter you. Don’t flatter me."
He pursued his theme,
however, without noticing my deprecation. "This very day I shall take you
in the carriage to Millcote, and you must choose some dresses for yourself. I
told you we shall be married in four weeks. The wedding is to take place
quietly, in the church down below yonder; and then I shall waft you away at
once to town. After a brief stay there, I shall bear my treasure to regions
nearer the sun: to French vineyards and Italian plains; and she shall see
whatever is famous in old story and in modern record: she shall taste, too, of
the life of cities; and she shall learn to value herself by just comparison
with others."
"Shall I travel?
-- and with you, Sir?"
"You shall sojourn
at Paris, Rome, and Naples: at Florence, Venice, and Vienna: all the ground I
have wandered over shall be re-trodden by you: wherever I stamped my hoof, your
sylph’s foot shall step also. Ten years since, I flew through Europe half mad;
with disgust, hate, and rage as my companions: now I shall revisit it healed
and cleaned, with a very angel as my comforter."
I laughed at him as he
said this. "I am not an angel," I asserted; "and I will not be
one till I die: I will be myself. Mr. Rochester, you must neither expect nor
exact anything celestial of me -- for you will not get it, any more than I shall
get it of you: which I do not at all anticipate."
"What do you
anticipate of me?"
"For a little
while you will perhaps be as you are now, -- a very little while; and then you
will turn cool; and then you will be capricious; and then you will be stern,
and I shall have much ado to please you: but when you get well used to me, you
will perhaps like me again, -- like me, I say, not love me. I suppose your love
will effervesce in six months, or less. I have observed in books written by
men, that period assigned as the farthest to which a husband’s ardour extends.
Yet, after all, as a friend and companion, I hope never to become quite
distasteful to my dear master."
"Distasteful! and
like you again! I think I shall like you again, and yet again: and I will make
you confess I do not only like, but love you -- with truth, fervour,
constancy."
"Yet are you not
capricious, Sir?"
"To women who
please me only by their faces, I am the very devil when I find out they have
neither souls nor hearts -- when they open to me a perspective of flatness,
triviality, and perhaps imbecility, coarseness, and ill-temper: but to the
clear eye and eloquent tongue, to the soul made of fire, and the character that
bends but does not break -- at once supple and stable, tractable and consistent
-- I am ever tender and true."
"Had you ever
experience of such a character, Sir? Did you ever love such an one?"
"I love it
now."
"But before me: if
I, indeed, in any respect come up to your difficult standard?"
"I never met your
likeness. Jane, you please me, and you master me -- you seem to submit, and I
like the sense of pliancy you impart; and while I am twining the soft, silken
skein round my finger, it sends a thrill up my arm to my heart. I am influenced
-- conquered; and the influence is sweeter than I can express; and the conquest
I undergo has a witchery beyond any triumph I can win. Why do you smile, Jane?
What does that inexplicable, that uncanny turn of countenance mean?"
"I was thinking,
Sir (you will excuse the idea; it was involuntary), I was thinking of Hercules
and Samson with their charmers --"
"You were, you
little elfish --"
"Hush, Sir! You
don’t talk very wisely just now; any more than those gentlemen acted very
wisely. However, had they been married, they would no doubt by their severity
as husbands have made up for their softness as suitors; and so will you, I
fear. I wonder how you will answer me a year hence, should I ask a favour it
does not suit your convenience or pleasure to grant."
"Ask me something
now, Janet -- the least thing: I desire to be entreated --"
"Indeed I will
Sir; I have my petition all ready."
"Speak! But if you
look up and smile with that countenance, I shall swear concession before I know
to what, and that will make a fool of me."
"Not at all, Sir;
I ask only this: don’t send for the jewels, and don’t crown me with roses: you
might as well put a border of gold lace round that plain pocket-handkerchief
you have there."
"I might as well ‘gild
refined gold.’ I know it: your request is granted then -- for the time. I will
remand the order I despatched to my banker. But you have not yet asked for
anything; you have prayed a gift to be withdrawn: try again."
"Well, then, Sir,
have the goodness to gratify my curiosity, which is much piqued on one
point."
He looked disturbed.
"What? what?" he said hastily. "Curiosity is a dangerous
petition: it is well I have not taken a vow to accord every request --"
"But there can be
no danger in complying with this, Sir."
"Utter it, Jane:
but I wish that instead of a mere inquiry into, perhaps, a secret, it was a
wish for half my estate."
"Now, King
Ahasuerus! What do I want with half your estate? Do you think I am a
Jew-usurer, seeking good investment in land? I would much rather have all your
confidence. You will not exclude me from your confidence if you admit me to
your heart?"
"You are welcome
to all my confidence that is worth having, Jane; but for God’s sake, don’t
desire a useless burden! Don’t long for poison -- don’t turn out a downright
Eve on my hands!"
"Why not, Sir? You
have just been telling me how much you liked to be conquered, and how pleasant
over-persuasion is to you. Don’t you think I had better take advantage of the
confession, and begin and coax and entreat -- even cry and be sulky if
necessary -- for the sake of a mere essay of my power?"
"I dare you to any
such experiment. Encroach, presume, and the game is up."
"Is it, Sir? You
soon give in. How stern you look now! Your eyebrows have become as thick as my
finger, and your forehead resembles what, in some very astonishing poetry, I
once saw styled, ‘a blue-piled thunderloft.’ That will be your married look,
Sir, I suppose?"
"If that will be
your married look, I, as a Christian, will soon give up the notion of
consorting with a mere sprite or salamander. But what had you to ask, thing? --
out with it!"
"There, you are
less than civil now; and I like rudeness a great deal better than flattery. I
had rather be a thing than an angel. This is what I have to ask, -- Why did you
take such pains to make me believe you wished to marry Miss Ingram?"
"Is that all?
Thank God it is no worse!" And now he unknit his black brows; looked down,
smiling at me, and stroked my hair, as if well pleased at seeing a danger
averted. "I think I may confess," he continued, "even although I
should make you a little indignant, Jane -- and I have seen what a fire-spirit
you can be when you are indignant. You glowed in the cool moonlight last night,
when you mutinied against fate, and claimed your rank as my equal. Janet, by
the bye, it was you who made me the offer."
"Of course I did.
But to the point if you please, Sir -- Miss Ingram?"
"Well, I feigned
courtship of Miss Ingram, because I wished to render you as madly in love with
me as I was with you; and I knew jealousy would be the best ally I could call
in for the furtherance of that end."
"Excellent! -- Now
you are small -- not one whit bigger than the end of my little finger. It was a
burning shame and a scandalous disgrace to act in that way. Did you think
nothing of Miss Ingram’s feelings, Sir?"
"Her feelings are
concentrated in one -- pride; and that needs humbling. Were you jealous,
Jane?"
"Never mind, Mr.
Rochester: it is in no way interesting to you to know that. Answer me truly
once more. Do you think Miss Ingram will not suffer from your dishonest
coquetry? Won’t she feel forsaken and deserted?"
"Impossible! --
when I told you how she, on the contrary, deserted me: the idea of my
insolvency cooled, or rather extinguished, her flame in a moment."
"You have a
curious, designing mind, Mr. Rochester. I am afraid your principles on some
points are eccentric."
"My principles
were never trained, Jane: they may have grown a little awry for want of
attention."
"Once again,
seriously; may I enjoy the great good that has been vouchsafed to me, without
fearing that any one else is suffering the bitter pain I myself felt a while
ago?"
"That you may, my
good little girl: there is not another being in the world has the same pure
love for me as yourself -- for I lay that pleasant unction to my soul, Jane, a
belief in your affection."
I turned my lips to the
hand that lay on my shoulder. I loved him very much -- more than I could trust
myself to say -- more than words had power to express.
"Ask something
more," he said presently; "it is my delight to be entreated, and to
yield."
I was again ready with
my request. "Communicate your intentions to Mrs. Fairfax, Sir: she saw me
with you last night in the hall, and she was shocked. Give her some explanation
before I see her again. It pains me to be misjudged by so good a woman."
"Go to your room,
and put on your bonnet," he replied. "I mean you to accompany me to
Millcote this morning; and while you prepare for the drive, I will enlighten
the old lady’s understanding. Did she think, Janet, you had given the world for
love, and considered it well lost?"
"I believe she thought
I had forgotten my station, and yours, Sir."
"Station! station!
-- your station is in my heart, and on the necks of those who would insult you,
now or hereafter. -- Go."
I was soon dressed; and
when I heard Mr. Rochester quit Mrs. Fairfax’s parlour, I hurried down to it.
The old lady had been reading her morning portion of Scripture -- the Lesson
for the day; her Bible lay open before her, and her spectacles were upon it.
Her occupation, suspended by Mr. Rochester’s announcement, seemed now forgotten:
her eyes, fixed on the blank wall opposite, expressed the surprise of a quiet
mind stirred by unwonted tidings. Seeing me, she roused herself: she made a
sort of effort to smile, and framed a few words of congratulation; but the
smile expired, and the sentence was abandoned unfinished. She put up her
spectacles, shut the Bible, and pushed her chair back from the table.
"I feel so
astonished," she began, "I hardly know what to say to you, Miss Eyre.
I have surely not been dreaming, have I? Sometimes I half fall asleep when I am
sitting alone and fancy things that have never happened. It has seemed to me
more than once when I have been in a doze, that my dear husband, who died
fifteen years since, has come in and sat down beside me; and that I have even
heard him call me by my name, Alice, as he used to do. Now, can you tell me
whether it is actually true that Mr. Rochester has asked you to marry him? Don’t
laugh at me. But I really thought he came in here five minutes ago, and said
that in a month you would be his wife."
"He has said the
same thing to me," I replied.
"He has! Do you
believe him? Have you accepted him?"
"Yes."
She looked at me
bewildered.
"I could never
have thought it. He is a proud man: all the Rochesters were proud: and his
father, at least, liked money. He, too, has always been called careful. He
means to marry you?"
"He tells me
so."
She surveyed my whole
person: in her eyes I read that they had there found no charm powerful enough
to solve the enigma.
"It passes me!"
she continued; "but no doubt it is true since you say so. How it will
answer, I cannot tell: I really don’t know. Equality of position and fortune is
often advisable in such cases; and there are twenty years of difference in your
ages. He might almost be your father."
"No, indeed, Mrs.
Fairfax!" exclaimed I, nettled; "he is nothing like my father! No
one, who saw us together, would suppose it for an instant. Mr. Rochester looks
as young, and is as young, as some men at five-and-twenty."
"Is it really for
love he is going to marry you?" she asked.
I was so hurt by her
coldness and scepticism, that the tears rose to my eyes.
"I am sorry to
grieve you," pursued the widow; "but you are so young, and so little
acquainted with men, I wished to put you on your guard. It is an old saying
that "all is not gold that glitters"; and in this case I do fear
there will be something found to be different to what either you or I
expect."
"Why? -- am I a
monster?" I said: "is it impossible that Mr. Rochester should have a
sincere affection for me?"
"No: you are very
well; and much improved of late; and Mr. Rochester, I daresay, is fond of you.
I have always noticed that you were a sort of pet of his. There are times when,
for your sake, I have been a little uneasy at his marked preference, and have
wished to put you on your guard: but I did not like to suggest even the
possibility of wrong. I knew such an idea would shock, perhaps offend you; and
you were so discreet, and so thoroughly modest and sensible, I hoped you might
be trusted to protect yourself. Last night I cannot tell you what I suffered
when I sought all over the house, and could find you nowhere, nor the master
either; and then, at twelve o’clock, saw you come in with him."
"Well, never mind
that now," I interrupted impatiently; "it is enough that all was
right."
"I hope all will
be right in the end," she said: "but believe me, you cannot be too
careful. Try and keep Mr. Rochester at a distance: distrust yourself as well as
him. Gentlemen in his station are not accustomed to marry their
governesses."
I was growing truly
irritated: happily, Adèle ran in.
"Let me go, -- let
me go to Millcote too!" she cried. "Mr. Rochester won’t: though there
is so much room in the new carriage. Beg him to let me go, mademoiselle."
"That I will, Adèle;"
and I hastened away with her, glad to quit my gloomy monitress. The carriage
was ready: they were bringing it round to the front, and my master was pacing
the pavement, Pilot following him backwards and forwards.
"Adèle may
accompany us, may she not, Sir?"
"I told her no. I’ll
have no brats! -- I’ll have only you."
"Do let her go,
Mr. Rochester, if you please: it would be better."
"Not it: she will
be a restraint."
He was quite
peremptory, both in look and voice. The chill of Mrs. Fairfax’s warnings, and
the damp of her doubts were upon me: something of unsubstantiality and
uncertainty had beset my hopes. I half lost the sense of power over him. I was
about mechanically to obey him, without further remonstrance; but as he helped
me into the carriage, he looked at my face.
"What is the
matter?" he asked; "all the sunshine is gone. Do you really wish the
bairn to go? Will it annoy you if she is left behind?"
"I would far
rather she went, Sir."
"Then off for your
bonnet, and back like a flash of lightning!" cried he to Adèle.
She obeyed him with
what speed she might.
"After all, a
single morning’s interruption will not matter much," said he, "when I
mean shortly to claim you -- your thoughts, conversation, and company -- for
life."
Adèle, when lifted in,
commenced kissing me, by way of expressing her gratitude for my intercession:
she was instantly stowed away into a corner on the other side of him. She then
peeped round to where I sat; so stern a neighbour was too restrictive; to him,
in his present fractious mood, she dared whisper no observations, nor ask of
him any information.
"Let her come to
me," I entreated: "she will, perhaps, trouble you, Sir: there is
plenty of room on this side."
He handed her over as
if she had been a lapdog. "I’ll send her to school yet," he said, but
now he was smiling.
Adèle heard him, and
asked if she was to go to school "sans mademoiselle?"
"Yes," he
replied, "absolutely sans mademoiselle; for I am to take mademoiselle to
the moon, and there I shall seek a cave in one of the white valleys among the
volcano-tops, and mademoiselle shall live with me there, and only me."
"She will have
nothing to eat: you will starve her," observed Adèle.
"I shall gather
manna for her morning and night: the plains and hillsides in the moon are
bleached with manna, Adèle."
"She will want to
warm herself: what will she do for a fire?"
"Fire rises out of
the lunar mountains: when she is cold, I’ll carry her up to a peak, and lay her
down on the edge of a crater."
"Oh, qu’elle y
sera mal -- peu comfortable! And her clothes, they will wear out: how can she
get new ones?"
Mr. Rochester professed
to be puzzled. "Hem!" said he. "What would you do, Adèle? Cudgel
your brains for an expedient. How would a white or a pink cloud answer for a
gown, do you think? And one could cut a pretty enough scarf out of a
rainbow."
"She is far better
as she is," concluded Adèle, after musing some time: "besides, she
would get tired of living with only you in the moon. If I were mademoiselle, I
would never consent to go with you."
"She has
consented: she has pledged her word."
"But you can’t get
her there; there is no road to the moon: it is all air; and neither you nor she
can fly."
"Adèle, look at
that field." We were now outside Thornfield gates, and bowling lightly
along the smooth road to Millcote, where the dust was well laid by the
thunderstorm, and where the low hedges and lofty timber trees on each side
glistened green and rain-refreshed.
"In that field, Adèle,
I was walking late one evening about a fortnight since -- the evening of the
day you helped me to make hay in the orchard meadows; and as I was tired with
raking swaths, I sat down to rest me on a stile; and there I took out a little
book and a pencil, and began to write about a misfortune that befell me long
ago, and a wish I had for happy days to come: I was writing away very fast,
though daylight was fading from the leaf, when something came up the path and
stopped two yards off me. I looked at it. It was a little thing with a veil of
gossamer on its head. I beckoned it to come near me; it stood soon at my knee.
I never spoke to it, and it never spoke to me, in words; but I read its eyes,
and it read mine; and our speechless colloquy was to this effect: --
"It was a fairy,
and come from Elf-land, it said; and its errand was to make me happy: I must go
with it out of the common world to a lonely place -- such as the moon, for
instance -- and it nodded its head towards her horn, rising over Hayhill: it
told me of the alabaster cave and silver vale where we might live. I said I
should like to go; but reminded it, as you did me, that I had no wings to fly.
"‘Oh,’ returned
the fairy, ‘that does not signify! Here is a talisman will remove all
difficulties;’ and she held out a pretty gold ring. ‘Put it,’ she said, ‘on the
fourth finger of my left hand, and I am yours, and you are mine; and we shall
leave earth, and make our own heaven yonder.’ She nodded again at the moon. The
ring, Adèle, is in my breeches-pocket, under the disguise of a sovereign: but I
mean soon to change it to a ring again."
"But what has
mademoiselle to do with it? I don’t care for the fairy: you said it was
mademoiselle you would take to the moon?"
"Mademoiselle is a
fairy," he said, whispering mysteriously. Whereupon I told her not to mind
his badinage; and she, on her part, evinced a fund of genuine French
scepticism: denominating Mr. Rochester "un vrai menteur," and
assuring him that she made no account whatever of his "Contes de fée,"
and that "du reste, il n’y avait pas de fées, et quand même il y en
avait:" she was sure they would never appear to him, nor ever give him
rings, or offer to live with him in the moon.
The hour spent at
Millcote was a somewhat harassing one to me. Mr. Rochester obliged me to go to
a certain silk warehouse: there I was ordered to choose half a dozen dresses. I
hated the business, I begged leave to defer it: no -- it should be gone through
with now. By dint of entreaties expressed in energetic whispers, I reduced the
half-dozen to two: these, however, he vowed he would select himself. With
anxiety I watched his eye rove over the gay stores: he fixed on a rich silk of
the most brilliant amethyst dye, and a superb pink satin. I told him in a new
series of whispers, that he might as well buy me a gold gown and a silver
bonnet at once: I should certainly never venture to wear his choice. With
infinite difficulty, for he was stubborn as a stone, I persuaded him to make an
exchange in favour of a sober black satin and pearl-grey silk. "It might
pass for the present," he said; "but he would yet see me glittering
like a parterre."
Glad was I to get him
out of the silk warehouse, and then out of a jeweller’s shop: the more he bought
me, the more my cheek burned with a sense of annoyance and degradation. As we
re-entered the carriage, and I sat back feverish and fagged, I remembered what,
in the hurry of events, dark and bright, I had wholly forgotten -- the letter
of my uncle, John Eyre, to Mrs. Reed: his intention to adopt me and make me his
legatee. "It would, indeed, be a relief," I thought, "if I had
ever so small an independency; I never can bear being dressed like a doll by
Mr. Rochester, or sitting like a second Danae with the golden shower falling
daily round me. I will write to Madeira the moment I get home, and tell my
uncle John I am going to be married, and to whom: if I had but a prospect of
one day bringing Mr. Rochester an accession of fortune, I could better endure
to be kept by him now." And somewhat relieved by this idea (which I failed
not to execute that day), I ventured once more to meet my master’s and lover’s
eye, which most pertinaciously sought mine, though I averted both face and
gaze. He smiled; and I thought his smile was such as a sultan might, in a
blissful and fond moment, bestow on a slave his gold and gems had enriched: I
crushed his hand, which was ever hunting mine, vigorously, and thrust it back
to him red with the passionate pressure.
"You need not look
in that way," I said; "if you do, I’ll wear nothing but my old Lowood
frocks to the end of the chapter. I’ll be married in this lilac gingham: you
may make a dressing-gown for yourself out of the pearl-grey silk, and an
infinite series of waistcoats out of the black satin."
He chuckled; he rubbed
his hands. "Oh, it is rich to see and hear her!" he exclaimed.
"Is she original? Is she piquant? I would not exchange this one little
English girl for the Grand Turk’s whole seraglio, gazelle-eyes, houri forms,
and all!"
The Eastern allusion
bit me again. "I’ll not stand you an inch in the stead of a
seraglio," I said; "so don’t consider me an equivalent for one. If
you have a fancy for anything in that line, away with you, Sir, to the bazaars
of Stamboul without delay, and lay out in extensive slave-purchases some of
that spare cash you seem at a loss to spend satisfactorily here."
"And what will you
do, Janet, while I am bargaining for so many tons of flesh and such an
assortment of black eyes?"
"I’ll be preparing
myself to go out as a missionary to preach liberty to them that are enslaved --
your harem inmates amongst the rest. I’ll get admitted there, and I’ll stir up
mutiny; and you, three-tailed bashaw as you are, Sir, shall in a trice find yourself
fettered amongst our hands: nor will I, for one, consent to cut your bonds till
you have signed a charter, the most liberal that despot ever yet
conferred."
"I would consent
to be at your mercy, Jane."
"I would have no
mercy, Mr. Rochester, if you supplicated for it with an eye like that. While
you looked so, I should be certain that whatever charter you might grant under
coercion, your first act, when released, would be to violate its
conditions."
"Why, Jane, what
would you have? I fear you will compel me to go through a private marriage
ceremony, besides that performed at the altar. You will stipulate, I see, for
peculiar terms -- what will they be?"
"I only want an
easy mind, Sir; not crushed by crowded obligations. Do you remember what you said
of Céline Varens? -- of the diamonds, the cashmeres you gave her? I will not be
your English Céline Varens. I shall continue to act as Adèle’s governess; by
that I shall earn my board and lodging, and thirty pounds a year besides. I’ll
furnish my own wardrobe out of that money, and you shall give me nothing but
--"
"Well, but
what?"
"Your regard; and
if I give you mine in return, that debt will be quit."
"Well, for cool
native impudence and pure innate pride, you haven’t your equal," said he.
We were now approaching Thornfield. "Will it please you to dine with me
to-day?" he asked, as we re-entered the gates.
"No, thank you,
Sir."
"And what for, ‘no,
thank you’? if one may inquire."
"I never have
dined with you, Sir: and I see no reason why I should now: till --"
"Till what? You
delight in half-phrases."
"Till I can’t help
it."
"Do you suppose I
eat like an ogre or a ghoul, that you dread being the companion of my
repast?"
"I have formed no
supposition on the subject, Sir; but I want to go on as usual for another
month."
"You will give up
your governessing slavery at once."
"Indeed, begging
your pardon, Sir, I shall not. I shall just go on with it as usual. I shall
keep out of your way all day, as I have been accustomed to do: you may send for
me in the evening, when you feel disposed to see me, and I’ll come then; but at
no other time."
"I want a smoke,
Jane, or a pinch of snuff, to comfort me under all this, "pour me donner
une contenance," as Adèle would say; and unfortunately I have neither my
cigar-case nor my snuff-box. But listen -- whisper -- It is your time now,
little tyrant, but it will be mine presently; and when once I have fairly
seized you, to have and to hold, I’ll just -- figuratively speaking -- attach
you to a chain like this" (touching his watch-guard). "Yes, bonny wee
thing, I’ll wear you in my bosom, lest my jewel I should tyne."
He said this as he
helped me to alight from the carriage, and while he afterwards lifted out Adèle,
I entered the house, and made good my retreat upstairs.
He duly summoned me to
his presence in the evening. I had prepared an occupation for him; for I was
determined not to spend the whole time in a tête-à-tête conversation. I
remembered his fine voice; I knew he liked to sing -- good singers generally
do. I was no vocalist myself, and, in his fastidious judgment, no musician,
either; but I delighted in listening when the performance was good. No sooner
had twilight, that hour of romance, began to lower her blue and starry banner
over the lattice, than I rose, opened the piano, and entreated him, for the
love of heaven, to give me a song. He said I was a capricious witch, and that
he would rather sing another time; but I averred that no time was like the
present.
"Did I like his
voice?" he asked.
"Very much."
I was not fond of pampering that susceptible vanity of his; but for once, and
from motives of expediency, I would e’en soothe and stimulate it.
"Then, Jane, you
must play the accompaniment."
"Very well, Sir, I
will try."
I did try, but was
presently swept off the stool and denominated "a little bungler."
Being pushed unceremoniously to one side -- which was precisely what I wished
-- he usurped my place, and proceeded to accompany himself: for he could play
as well as sing. I hied me to the window-recess. And while I sat there and
looked out on the still trees and dim lawn, to a sweet air was sung in mellow
tones the following strain: --
"The truest love
that ever heart
Felt at its kindled
core,
Did through each vein,
in quickened start,
The tide of being pour.
Her coming was my hope
each day,
Her parting was my
pain;
The chance that did her
steps delay
Was ice in every vein.
I dreamed it would be
nameless bliss,
As I loved, loved to
be;
And to this object did
I press
As blind as eagerly.
But wide as pathless
was the space
That lay our lives
between,
And dangerous as the
foamy race
Of ocean-surges green.
And haunted as a
robber-path
Through wilderness or
wood;
For Might and Right,
and Woe and Wrath,
Between our spirits
stood.
I dangers dared; I
hindrance scorned;
I omens did defy:
Whatever menaced,
harassed, warned,
I passed impetuous by.
On sped my rainbow,
fast as light;
I flew as in a dream;
For glorious rose upon
my sight
That child of Shower
and Gleam.
Still bright on clouds
of suffering dim
Shines that soft,
solemn joy;
Nor care I now, how
dense and grim
Disasters gather nigh:
I care not in this
moment sweet,
Though all I have
rushed o’er
Should come on pinion,
strong and fleet,
Proclaiming vengeance
sore:
Though haughty Hate
should strike me down,
Right, bar approach to
me,
And grinding Might,
with furious frown,
Swear endless enmity.
My love has placed her
little hand
With noble faith in
mine,
And vowed that wedlock’s
sacred band
Our nature shall
entwine.
My love has sworn, with
sealing kiss,
With me to live -- to
die;
I have at last my
nameless bliss:
As I love -- loved am
I!"
He rose and came
towards me, and I saw his face all kindled, and his full falcon-eye flashing,
and tenderness and passion in every lineament. I quailed momentarily -- then I
rallied. Soft scene, daring demonstration, I would not have; and I stood in
peril of both: a weapon of defence must be prepared -- I whetted my tongue: as
he reached me, I asked with asperity, "whom he was going to marry
now?"
"That was a
strange question to be put by his darling Jane."
"Indeed! I
considered it a very natural and necessary one: he had talked of his future
wife dying with him. What did he mean by such a pagan idea? I had no intention
of dying with him -- he might depend on that."
"Oh, all he
longed, all he prayed for, was that I might live with him! Death was not for
such as I."
"Indeed it was: I
had as good a right to die when my time came as he had: but I should bide that
time, and not be hurried away in a suttee."
"Would I forgive
him for the selfish idea, and prove my pardon by a reconciling kiss?"
"No: I would
rather be excused."
Here I heard myself
apostrophised as a "hard little thing"; and it was added, "any
other woman would have been melted to marrow at hearing such stanzas crooned in
her praise."
I assured him I was
naturally hard -- very flinty, and that he would often find me so; and that,
moreover, I was determined to show him divers rugged points in my character
before the ensuing four weeks elapsed: he should know fully what sort of a
bargain he had made, while there was yet time to rescind it.
"Would I be quiet
and talk rationally?"
"I would be quiet
if he liked, and as to talking rationally, I flattered myself I was doing that
now."
He fretted, pished, and
pshawed. "Very good," I thought; "you may fume and fidget as you
please: but this is the best plan to pursue with you, I am certain. I like you
more than I can say; but I’ll not sink into a bathos of sentiment: and with
this needle of repartee I’ll keep you from the edge of the gulf too; and,
moreover, maintain by its pungent aid that distance between you and myself most
conducive to our real mutual advantage."
From less to more, I
worked him up to considerable irritation; then, after he had retired, in
dudgeon, quite to the other end of the room, I got up, and saying, "I wish
you good-night, Sir," in my natural and wonted respectful manner, I
slipped out by the side-door and got away.
The system thus entered
on, I pursued during the whole season of probation; and with the best success.
He was kept, to be sure, rather cross and crusty; but on the whole I could see
he was excellently entertained, and that a lamb-like submission and turtle-dove
sensibility, while fostering his despotism more, would have pleased his
judgment, satisfied his common sense, and even suited his taste less.
In other people’s
presence I was, as formerly, deferential and quiet; any other line of conduct
being uncalled for: it was only in the evening conferences I thus thwarted and
afflicted him. He continued to send for me punctually the moment the clock
struck seven; though when I appeared before him now, he had no such honeyed
terms as "love" and "darling" on his lips: the best words
at my service were "provoking puppet," "malicious elf,"
"sprite," "changeling," etc. For caresses, too, I now got
grimaces; for a pressure of the hand, a pinch on the arm; for a kiss on the
cheek, a severe tweak of the ear. It was all right: at present I decidedly
preferred these fierce favours to anything more tender. Mrs. Fairfax, I saw,
approved me: her anxiety on my account vanished; therefore I was certain I did
well. Meantime, Mr. Rochester affirmed I was wearing him to skin and bone, and
threatened awful vengeance for my present conduct at some period fast coming. I
laughed in my sleeve at his menaces. "I can keep you in reasonable check
now," I reflected; "and I don’t doubt to be able to do it hereafter:
if one expedient loses its virtue, another must be devised."
Yet after all my task
was not an easy one; often I would rather have pleased than teased him. My
future husband was becoming to me my whole world; and more than the world:
almost my hope of heaven. He stood between me and every thought of religion, as
an eclipse intervenes between man and the broad sun. I could not, in those
days, see God for His creature: of whom I had made an idol.
THE month of courtship
had wasted: its very last hours were being numbered. There was no putting off
the day that advanced -- the bridal day; and all preparations for its arrival
were complete. I, at least, had nothing more to do: there were my trunks,
packed, locked, corded, ranged in a row along the wall of my little chamber;
to-morrow, at this time, they would be far on their road to London: and so
should I (D.V.), -- or rather, not I, but one Jane Rochester, a person whom as
yet I knew not. The cards of address alone remained to nail on: they lay, four
little squares, in the drawer. Mr. Rochester had himself written the direction,
"Mrs. Rochester, -- Hotel, London," on each: I could not persuade
myself to affix them, or to have them affixed. Mrs. Rochester! She did not
exist: she would not be born till to-morrow, some time after eight o’clock
A.M.; and I would wait to be assured she had come into the world alive before I
assigned to her all that property. It was enough that in yonder closet, opposite
my dressing-table, garments said to be hers had already displaced my black
stuff Lowood frock and straw bonnet: for not to me appertained that suit of
wedding raiment; the pearl-coloured robe, the vapoury veil pendent from the
usurped portmanteau. I shut the closet to conceal the strange, wraith-like
apparel it contained; which, at this evening hour -- nine o’clock -- gave out
certainly a most ghostly shimmer through the shadow of my apartment. "I
will leave you by yourself, white dream," I said. "I am feverish: I
hear the wind blowing: I will go out of doors and feel it."
It was not only the
hurry of preparation that made me feverish; not only the anticipation of the
great change -- the new life which was to commence to-morrow: both these
circumstances had their share, doubtless, in producing that restless, excited
mood which hurried me forth at this late hour into the darkening grounds: but a
third cause influenced my mind more than they.
I had at heart a
strange and anxious thought. Something had happened which I could not
comprehend; no one knew of or had seen the event but myself: it had taken place
the preceding night. Mr. Rochester that night was absent from home; nor was he
yet returned: business had called him to a small estate of two or three farms
he possessed thirty miles off -- business it was requisite he should settle in
person, previous to his meditated departure from England. I waited now his
return; eager to disburthen my mind, and to seek of him the solution of the
enigma that perplexed me. Stay till he comes, reader: and, when I disclose my
secret to him, you shall share the confidence.
I sought the orchard,
driven to its shelter by the wind, which all day had blown strong and full from
the south, without, however, bringing a speck of rain. Instead of subsiding as
night drew on, it seemed to augment its rush and deepen its roar: the trees
blew steadfastly one way, never writhing round, and scarcely tossing back their
boughs once in an hour; so continuous was the strain bending their branchy
heads northward -- the clouds drifted from pole to pole, fast following, mass
on mass: no glimpse of blue sky had been visible that July day.
It was not without a
certain wild pleasure I ran before the wind, delivering my trouble of mind to
the measureless air-torrent thundering through space. Descending the laurel
walk, I faced the wreck of the chestnut-tree; it stood up black and riven: the
trunk, split down the centre, gaped ghastly. The cloven halves were not broken
from each other, for the firm base and strong roots kept them unsundered below;
though community of vitality was destroyed -- the sap could flow no more: their
great boughs on each side were dead, and next winter’s tempests would be sure
to fell one or both to earth: as yet, however, they might be said to form one
tree -- a ruin, but an entire ruin.
"You did right to
hold fast to each other," I said: as if the monster-splinters were living
things, and could hear me. "I think, scathed as you look, and charred and
scorched, there must be a little sense of life in you yet, rising out of that
adhesion at the faithful, honest roots: you will never have green leaves more
-- never more see birds making nests and singing idyls in your boughs; the time
of pleasure and love is over with you: but you are not desolate: each of you
has a comrade to sympathise with him in his decay." As I looked up at
them, the moon appeared momentarily in that part of the sky which filled their
fissure; her disk was blood-red and half overcast; she seemed to throw on me
one bewildered, dreary glance, and buried herself again instantly in the deep
drift of cloud. The wind fell, for a second, round Thornfield; but far away
over wood and water, poured a wild, melancholy wail: it was sad to listen to,
and I ran off again.
Here and there I
strayed through the orchard, gathered up the apples with which the grass round
the tree roots was thickly strewn; then I employed myself in dividing the ripe
from the unripe; I carried them into the house and put them away in the storeroom.
Then I repaired to the library to ascertain whether the fire was lit, for,
though summer, I knew on such a gloomy evening Mr. Rochester would like to see
a cheerful hearth when he came in: yes, the fire had been kindled some time,
and burnt well. I placed his arm-chair by the chimney-corner: I wheeled the
table near it: I let down the curtain, and had the candles brought in ready for
lighting. More restless than ever, when I had completed these arrangements I
could not sit still, nor even remain in the house: a little timepiece in the
room and the old clock in the hall simultaneously struck ten.
"How late it
grows!" I said. "I will run down to the gates: it is moonlight at
intervals; I can see a good way on the road. He may be coming now, and to meet
him will save some minutes of suspense."
The wind roared high in
the great trees which embowered the gates; but the road as far as I could see,
to the right hand and the left, was all still and solitary: save for the
shadows of clouds crossing it at intervals as the moon looked out, it was a
long pale line, unvaried by one moving speck.
A puerile tear dimmed
my eye while I looked -- a tear of disappointment and impatience; ashamed of
it, I wiped it away. I lingered; the moon shut herself wholly within her
chamber, and drew close her curtain of dense cloud: the night grew dark; rain
came driving fast on the gale.
"I wish he would
come! I wish he would come!" I exclaimed, seized with hypochondriac
foreboding. I had expected his arrival before tea; now it was dark: what could
keep him? Had an accident happened? The event of last night again recurred to
me. I interpreted it as a warning of disaster. I feared my hopes were too
bright to be realised; and I had enjoyed so much bliss lately that I imagined my
fortune had passed its meridian, and must now decline.
"Well, I cannot
return to the house," I thought; "I cannot sit by the fireside, while
he is abroad in inclement weather: better tire my limbs than strain my heart; I
will go forward and meet him."
I set out; I walked
fast, but not far: ere I had measured a quarter of a mile, I heard the tramp of
hoofs; a horseman came on, full gallop; a dog ran by his side. Away with evil
presentiment! It was he: here he was, mounted on Mesrour, followed by Pilot. He
saw me; for the moon had opened a blue field in the sky, and rode in it watery
bright: he took his hat off, and waved it round his head. I now ran to meet
him.
"There!" he
exclaimed, as he stretched out his hand and bent from the saddle: "you can’t
do without me, that is evident. Step on my boot-toe; give me both hands:
mount!"
I obeyed: joy made me
agile: I sprang up before him. A hearty kissing I got for a welcome, and some
boastful triumph, which I swallowed as well as I could. He checked himself in
his exultation to demand, "But is there anything the matter, Janet, that
you come to meet me at such an hour? Is there anything wrong?"
"No, but I thought
you would never come. I could not bear to wait in the house for you, especially
with this rain and wind."
"Rain and wind,
indeed! Yes, you are dripping like a mermaid; pull my cloak round you: but I
think you are feverish, Jane: both your cheek and hand are burning hot. I ask
again, is there anything the matter?"
"Nothing now; I am
neither afraid nor unhappy."
"Then you have
been both?"
"Rather: but I’ll
tell you all about it by and by, Sir; and I daresay you will only laugh at me
for my pains."
"I’ll laugh at you
heartily when to-morrow is past; till then I dare not: my prize is not certain.
This is you; who have been as slippery as an eel this last month, and as thorny
as a briar-rose? I could not lay a finger anywhere but I was pricked; and now I
seem to have gathered up a stray lamb in my arms. You wandered out of the fold
to seek your shepherd, did you, Jane?"
"I wanted you: but
don’t boast. Here we are at Thornfield: now let me get down."
He landed me on the
pavement. As John took his horse, and he followed me into the hall, he told me
to make haste and put something dry on, and then return to him in the library;
and he stopped me, as I made for the staircase, to extort a promise that I
would not be long: nor was I long; in five minutes I rejoined him. I found him
at supper.
"Take a seat and
bear me company, Jane: please God, it is the last meal but one you will eat at
Thornfield-Hall for a long time."
I sat down near him,
but told him I could not eat.
"Is it because you
have the prospect of a journey before you, Jane? Is it the thoughts of going to
London that takes away your appetite?"
"I cannot see my
prospects clearly to-night, Sir; and I hardly know what thoughts I have in my
head. Everything in life seems unreal."
"Except me: I am
substantial enough: -- touch me."
"You, Sir, are the
most phantom-like of all: you are a mere dream."
He held out his hand,
laughing. "Is that a dream?" said he, placing it close to my eyes. He
had a rounded, muscular, and vigorous hand, as well as a long, strong arm.
"Yes; though I
touch it, it is a dream," said I, as I put it down from before my face.
"Sir, have you finished supper?"
"Yes, Jane."
I rang the bell and
ordered away the tray. When we were again alone, I stirred the fire, and then
took a low seat at my master’s knee.
"It is near
midnight," I said.
"Yes: but
remember, Jane, you promised to wake with me the night before my wedding."
"I did; and I will
keep my promise, for an hour or two at least: I have no wish to go to
bed."
"Are all your
arrangements complete?"
"All, Sir."
"And on my part
likewise," he returned, "I have settled everything; and we shall
leave Thornfield to-morrow, within half an hour after our return from
church."
"Very well,
Sir."
"With what an
extraordinary smile you uttered that word -- ‘very well,’ Jane! What a bright
spot of colour you have on each cheek! and how strangely your eyes glitter! Are
you well?"
"I believe I
am."
"Believe! What is
the matter? Tell me what you feel."
"I could not, Sir:
no words could tell you what I feel. I wish this present hour would never end:
who knows with what fate the next day may come charged?"
"This is
hypochondria, Jane. You have been over-excited, or over-fatigued."
"Do you, Sir, feel
calm and happy?"
"Calm? -- no: but
happy -- to the heart’s core."
I looked up at him to
read the signs of bliss in his face: it was ardent and flushed.
"Give me your
confidence, Jane," he said: "relieve your mind of any weight that
oppresses it, by imparting it to me. What do you fear? -- that I shall not
prove a good husband?"
"It is the idea
farthest from my thoughts."
"Are you
apprehensive of the new sphere you are about to enter? -- of the new life into
which you are passing?"
"No."
"You puzzle me,
Jane: your look and tone of sorrowful audacity perplex and pain me. I want an
explanation."
"Then, Sir,
listen. You were from home last night?"
"I was: I know
that; and you hinted a while ago at something which had happened in my absence:
-- nothing, probably, of consequence; but, in short, it has disturbed you. Let
me hear it. Mrs. Fairfax has said something, perhaps? or you have overheard the
servants talk? -- your sensitive self-respect has been wounded?"
"No, Sir." It
struck twelve -- I waited till the timepiece had concluded its silver chime,
and the clock its hoarse, vibrating stroke, and then I proceeded.
"All day yesterday
I was very busy, and very happy in my ceaseless bustle; for I am not, as you
seem to think, troubled by any haunting fears about the new sphere, et cetera:
I think it a glorious thing to have the hope of living with you, because I love
you. No, Sir, don’t caress me now -- let me talk undisturbed. Yesterday I
trusted well in Providence, and believed that events were working together for
your good and mine: it was a fine day, if you recollect -- the calmness of the
air and sky forbade apprehensions respecting your safety or comfort on your
journey. I walked a little while on the pavement after tea, thinking of you;
and I beheld you in imagination so near me, I scarcely missed your actual
presence. I thought of the life that lay before me -- your life, Sir -- an
existence more expansive and stirring than my own: as much more so as the
depths of the sea to which the brook runs are than the shallows of its own
strait channel. I wondered why moralists call this world a dreary wilderness:
for me it blossomed like a rose. Just at sunset, the air turned cold and the
sky cloudy: I went in, Sophie called me upstairs to look at my wedding-dress,
which they had just brought; and under it in the box I found your present --
the veil which, in your princely extravagance, you sent for from London:
resolved, I suppose, since I would not have jewels, to cheat me into accepting
something as costly. I smiled as I unfolded it, and devised how I would tease you
about your aristocratic tastes, and your efforts to masque your plebeian bride
in the attributes of a peeress. I thought how I would carry down to you the
square of unembroidered blond I had myself prepared as a covering for my
low-born head, and ask if that was not good enough for a woman who could bring
her husband neither fortune, beauty, nor connections. I saw plainly how you
would look; and heard your impetuous republican answers, and your haughty
disavowal of any necessity on your part to augment your wealth, or elevate your
standing, by marrying either a purse or a coronet."
"How well you read
me, you witch!" interposed Mr. Rochester: "but what did you find in
the veil besides its embroidery? Did you find poison, or a dagger, that you
look so mournful now?"
"No, no, Sir;
besides the delicacy and richness of the fabric, I found nothing save Fairfax
Rochester’s pride; and that did not scare me, because I am used to the sight of
the demon. But, Sir, as it grew dark, the wind rose: it blew yesterday evening,
not as it blows now -- wild and high -- but "with a sullen, moaning
sound" far more eerie. I wished you were at home. I came into this room,
and the sight of the empty chair and fireless hearth chilled me. For some time
after I went to bed, I could not sleep -- a sense of anxious excitement
distressed me. The gale still rising, seemed to my ear to muffle a mournful
under-sound; whether in the house or abroad I could not at first tell, but it
recurred, doubtful yet doleful at every lull; at last I made out it must be
some dog howling at a distance. I was glad when it ceased. On sleeping, I
continued in dreams the idea of a dark and gusty night. I continued also the
wish to be with you, and experienced a strange, regretful consciousness of some
barrier dividing us. During all my first sleep, I was following the windings of
an unknown road; total obscurity environed me; rain pelted me; I was burdened
with the charge of a little child: a very small creature, too young and feeble
to walk, and which shivered in my cold arms, and wailed piteously in my ear. I
thought, Sir, that you were on the road a long way before me; and I strained
every nerve to overtake you, and made effort on effort to utter your name and
entreat you to stop -- but my movements were fettered, and my voice still died
away inarticulate; while you, I felt, withdrew farther and farther every
moment."
"And these dreams
weigh on your spirits now, Jane, when I am close to you? Little nervous
subject! Forget visionary woe, and think only of real happiness! You say you
love me, Janet: yes -- I will not forget that; and you cannot deny it. Those
words did not die inarticulate on your lips. I heard them clear and soft: a
thought too solemn perhaps, but sweet as music -- "I think it is a glorious
thing to have the hope of living with you, Edward, because I love you." Do
you love me, Jane? -- repeat it."
"I do, Sir. -- I
do, with my whole heart."
"Well," he
said, after some minutes’ silence, "it is strange; but that sentence has
penetrated my breast painfully. Why? I think because you said it with such an
earnest, religious energy, and because your upward gaze at me now is the very
sublime of faith, truth, and devotion: it is too much as if some spirit were
near me. Look wicked, Jane: as you know well how to look: coin one of your
wild, shy, provoking smiles, tell me you hate me -- teaze me, vex me; do
anything but move me: I would rather be incensed than saddened."
"I will tease you
and vex you to your heart’s content, when I have finished my tale: but hear me
to the end."
"I thought, Jane,
you had told me all. I thought I had found the source of your melancholy in a
dream."
I shook my head.
"What! is there more? But I will not believe it to be anything important.
I warn you of incredulity beforehand. Go on."
The disquietude of his
air, the somewhat apprehensive impatience of his manner, surprised me: but I
proceeded.
"I dreamt another
dream, Sir: that Thornfield-Hall was a dreary ruin, the retreat of bats and
owls. I thought that of all the stately front nothing remained but a shell-like
wall, very high and very fragile-looking. I wandered, on a moonlight night,
through the grass-grown enclosure within: here I stumbled over a marble hearth,
and there over a fallen fragment of cornice. Wrapped up in a shawl, I still
carried the unknown little child: I might not lay it down anywhere, however
tired were my arms -- however much its weight impeded my progress, I must
retain it. I heard the gallop of a horse at a distance on the road; I was sure
it was you; and you were departing for many years and for a distant country. I
climbed the thin wall with frantic perilous haste, eager to catch one glimpse
of you from the top: the stones rolled from under my feet, the ivy branches I
grasped gave way, the child clung round my neck in terror, and almost strangled
me; at last I gained the summit. I saw you like a speck on a white track,
lessening every moment. The blast blew so strong I could not stand. I sat down
on the narrow ledge; I hushed the scared infant in my lap: you turned an angle
of the road: I bent forward to take a last look; the wall crumbled; I was
shaken; the child rolled from my knee, I lost my balance, fell, and woke."
"Now, Jane, that
is all."
"All the preface,
Sir; the tale is yet to come. On waking, a gleam dazzled my eyes; I thought --
oh, it is daylight! But I was mistaken; it was only candlelight. Sophie, I
supposed, had come in. There was a light in the dressing-table, and the door of
the closet, where, before going to bed, I had hung my wedding-dress and veil,
stood open; I heard a rustling there. I asked, "Sophie, what are you
doing?" No one answered; but a form emerged from the closet; it took the
light, held it aloft, and surveyed the garments pendent from the portmanteau.
"Sophie! Sophie!" I again cried: and still it was silent. I had risen
up in bed, I bent forward: first surprise, then bewilderment, came over me; and
then my blood crept cold through my veins. Mr. Rochester, this was not Sophie,
it was not Leah, it was not Mrs. Fairfax: it was not -- no, I was sure of it,
and am still -- it was not even that strange woman, Grace Poole."
"It must have been
one of them," interrupted my master.
"No, Sir, I
solemnly assure you to the contrary. The shape standing before me had never
crossed my eyes within the precincts of Thornfield-Hall before; the height, the
contour were new to me."
"Describe it,
Jane."
"It seemed, Sir, a
woman, tall and large, with thick and dark hair hanging long down her back. I
know not what dress she had on: it was white and straight; but whether gown,
sheet, or shroud, I cannot tell."
"Did you see her
face?"
"Not at first. But
presently she took my veil from its place; she held it up, gazed at it long,
and then she threw it over her own head, and turned to the mirror. At that
moment I saw the reflection of the visage and features quite distinctly in the
dark oblong glass."
"And how were
they?"
"Fearful and
ghastly to me -- oh, Sir, I never saw a face like it! It was a discoloured face
-- it was a savage face. I wish I could forget the roll of the red eyes and the
fearful blackened inflation of the lineaments!"
"Ghosts are
usually pale, Jane."
"This, Sir, was
purple: the lips were swelled and dark; the brow furrowed: the black eyebrows
widely raised over the bloodshot eyes. Shall I tell you of what it reminded
me?"
"You may."
"Of the foul
German spectre -- the Vampyre."
"Ah! -- what did
it do?"
"Sir, it removed
my veil from its gaunt head, rent it in two parts, and flinging both on the
floor, trampled on them."
"Afterwards?"
"It drew aside the
window-curtain and looked out; perhaps it saw dawn approaching, for, taking the
candle, it retreated to the door. Just at my bedside, the figure stopped: the
fiery eyes glared upon me -- she thrust up her candle close to my face, and
extinguished it under my eyes. I was aware her lurid visage flamed over mine,
and I lost consciousness: for the second time in my life -- only the second
time -- I became insensible from terror."
"Who was with you
when you revived?"
"No one, Sir, but
the broad day. I rose, bathed my head and face in water, drank a long draught;
felt that though enfeebled I was not ill, and determined that to none but you
would I impart this vision. Now Sir, tell me who and what that woman was?"
"The creature of
an over-stimulated brain; that is certain. I must be careful of you, my treasure:
nerves like yours were not made for rough handling."
"Sir, depend on
it, my nerves were not in fault; the thing was real: the transaction actually
took place."
"And your previous
dreams, were they real too? Is Thornfield-Hall a ruin? Am I severed from you by
insuperable obstacles? Am I leaving you without a tear -- without a kiss --
without a word?"
"Not yet."
"Am I about to do
it? -- Why, the day is already commenced which is to bind us indissolubly; and
when we are once united, there shall be no recurrence of these mental terrors:
I guarantee that."
"Mental terrors,
Sir! I wish I could believe them to be only such: I wish it more now than ever;
since even you cannot explain to me the mystery of that awful visitant."
"And since I
cannot do it, Jane, it must have been unreal."
"But, Sir, when I
said so to myself on rising this morning, and when I looked round the room to
gather courage and comfort from the cheerful aspect of each familiar object in
full daylight, there -- on the carpet -- I saw what gave the distinct lie to my
hypothesis, -- the veil, torn from top to bottom in two halves!"
I felt Mr. Rochester
start and shudder; he hastily flung his arms round me. "Thank God!"
he exclaimed, "that if anything malignant did come near you last night, it
was only the veil that was harmed. Oh, to think what might have happened!"
He drew his breath
short, and strained me so close to him, I could scarcely pant. After some
minutes’ silence, he continued, cheerily: --
"Now, Janet, I’ll
explain to you all about it. It was half dream, half reality. A woman did, I
doubt not, enter your room: and that woman was -- must have been -- Grace
Poole. You call her a strange being yourself: from all you know, you have
reason so to call her -- what did she do to me? what to Mason? In a state
between sleeping and waking, you noticed her entrance and her actions; but
feverish, almost delirious as you were, you ascribed to her a goblin appearance
different from her own: the long dishevelled hair, the swelled black face, the
exaggerated stature, were figments of imagination; results of nightmare: the
spiteful tearing of the veil was real: and it is like her. I see you would ask
why I keep such a woman in my house: when we have been married a year and a
day, I will tell you; but not now. Are you satisfied, Jane? Do you accept my
solution of the mystery?"
I reflected, and in
truth it appeared to me the only possible one: satisfied I was not, but to
please him I endeavoured to appear so -- relieved, I certainly did feel; so I
answered him with a contented smile. And now, as it was long past one, I
prepared to leave him.
"Does not Sophie
sleep with Adèle in the nursery?" he asked, as I lit my candle.
"Yes, Sir."
"And there is room
enough in Adèle’s little bed for you. You must share it with her to-night,
Jane: it is no wonder that the incident you have related should make you
nervous, and I would rather you did not sleep alone: promise me to go to the
nursery."
"I shall be very
glad to do so, Sir."
"And fasten the
door securely on the inside. Wake Sophie when you go upstairs, under pretence
of requesting her to rouse you in good time to-morrow; for you must be dressed
and have finished breakfast before eight. And now, no more sombre thoughts: chase
dull care away, Janet. Don’t you hear to what soft whispers the wind has
fallen? and there is no more beating of rain against the window-panes: look
here" (he lifted up the curtain) -- "it is a lovely night!"
It was. Half heaven was
pure and stainless: the clouds, now trooping before the wind, which had shifted
to the west, were filing off eastward in long, silvered columns. The moon shone
peacefully.
"Well," said
Mr. Rochester, gazing inquiringly into my eyes, "how is my Janet
now?"
"The night is serene,
Sir; and so am I."
"And you will not
dream of separation and sorrow to-night; but of happy love and blissful
union."
This prediction was but
half fulfilled: I did not indeed dream of sorrow, but as little did I dream of
joy; for I never slept at all. With little Adèle in my arms, I watched the
slumber of childhood -- so tranquil, so passionless, so innocent -- and waited
for the coming day: all my life was awake and astir in my frame: and as soon as
the sun rose I rose too. I remember Adèle clung to me as I left her: I remember
I kissed her as I loosened her little hands from my neck; and I cried over her
with strange emotion, and quitted her because I feared my sobs would break her
still sound repose. She seemed the emblem of my past life; and he I was now to
array myself to meet, the dread, but adored, type of my unknown future day.
SOPHIE came at seven to
dress me: she was very long indeed in accomplishing her task; so long that Mr.
Rochester, grown, I suppose, impatient of my delay, sent up to ask why I did
not come. She was just fastening my veil (the plain square of blond after all)
to my hair with a brooch; I hurried from under her hands as soon as I could.
"Stop!" she
cried in French. "Look at yourself in the mirror: you have not taken one
peep."
So I turned at the
door: I saw a robed and veiled figure, so unlike my usual self that it seemed
almost the image of a stranger. "Jane!" called a voice, and I
hastened down. I was received at the foot of the stairs by Mr. Rochester.
"Lingerer!"
he said, "my brain is on fire with impatience, and you tarry so
long!"
He took me into the
dining-room, surveyed me keenly all over, pronounced me "fair as a lily,
and not only the pride of his life, but the desire of his eyes," and then
telling me he would give me but ten minutes to eat some breakfast, he rang the
bell. One of his lately hired servants, a footman, answered it.
"Is John getting
the carriage ready?"
"Yes, Sir."
"Is the luggage
brought down?"
"They are bringing
it down, Sir."
"Go you to the
church: see if Mr. Wood (the clergyman) and the clerk are there: return and
tell me."
The church, as the
reader knows, was but just beyond the gates; the footman soon returned.
"Mr. Wood is in
the vestry, Sir, putting on his surplice."
"And the
carriage?"
"The horses are
harnessing."
"We shall not want
it to go to church; but it must be ready the moment we return: all the boxes
and luggage arranged and strapped on, and the coachman in his seat."
"Yes, Sir."
"Jane, are you
ready?"
I rose. There were no
groomsmen, no bridesmaids, no relatives to wait for or marshal: none but Mr.
Rochester and I. Mrs. Fairfax stood in the hall as we passed. I would fain have
spoken to her, but my hand was held by a grasp of iron: I was hurried along by
a stride I could hardly follow; and to look at Mr. Rochester’s face was to feel
that not a second of delay would be tolerated for any purpose. I wonder what
other bridegroom ever looked as he did -- so bent up to a purpose, so grimly
resolute: or who, under such steadfast brows, ever revealed such flaming and
flashing eyes.
I know not whether the
day was fair or foul; in descending the drive, I gazed neither on sky nor
earth: my heart was with my eyes; and both seemed migrated into Mr. Rochester’s
frame. I wanted to see the invisible thing on which, as we went along, he
appeared to fasten a glance fierce and fell. I wanted to feel the thoughts
whose force he seemed breasting and resisting.
At the churchyard
wicket he stopped: he discovered I was quite out of breath. "Am I cruel in
my love?" he said. "Delay an instant: lean on me, Jane."
And now I can recall
the picture of the grey old house of God rising calm before me, of a rook
wheeling round the steeple, of a ruddy morning sky beyond. I remember
something, too, of the green grave-mounds; and I have not forgotten, either,
two figures of strangers straying amongst the low hillocks and reading the
mementoes graven on the few mossy head-stones. I noticed them, because, as they
saw us, they passed round to the back of the church; and I doubted not they
were going to enter by the side-aisle door and witness the ceremony. By Mr.
Rochester they were not observed; he was earnestly looking at my face, from
which the blood had, I daresay, momentarily fled: for I felt my forehead dewy,
and my cheeks and lips cold. When I rallied, which I soon did, he walked gently
with me up the path to the porch.
We entered the quiet
and humble temple; the priest waited in his white surplice at the lowly altar,
the clerk beside him. All was still: two shadows only moved in a remote corner.
My conjecture had been correct: the strangers had slipped in before us, and
they now stood by the vault of the Rochesters, their backs towards us, viewing
through the rails the old time-stained marble tomb, where a kneeling angel
guarded the remains of Damer de Rochester, slain at Marston Moor in the time of
the civil wars, and of Elizabeth, his wife.
Our place was taken at
the communion rails. Hearing a cautious step behind me, I glanced over my
shoulder: one of the strangers -- a gentleman, evidently -- was advancing up
the chancel. The service began. The explanation of the intent of matrimony was
gone through; and then the clergyman came a step farther forward, and, bending
slightly towards Mr. Rochester, went on.
"I require and
charge you both (as ye will answer at the dreadful day of judgment, when the
secrets of all hearts shall be disclosed), that if either of you know any impediment
why ye may not lawfully be joined together in matrimony, ye do now confess it;
for be ye well assured that so many as are coupled together otherwise than God’s
Word doth allow, are not joined together by God, neither is their matrimony
lawful."
He paused, as the
custom is. When is the pause after that sentence ever broken by reply? Not,
perhaps, once in a hundred years. And the clergyman, who had not lifted his
eyes from his book, and had held his breath but for a moment, was proceeding:
his hand was already stretched towards Mr. Rochester, as his lips unclosed to
ask, "Wilt thou have this woman for thy wedded wife?" -- when a
distinct and near voice said: --
"The marriage
cannot go on: I declare the existence of an impediment."
The clergyman looked up
at the speaker and stood mute; the clerk did the same; Mr. Rochester moved
slightly, as if an earthquake had rolled under his feet: taking a firmer
footing, and not turning his head or eyes, he said, "Proceed."
Profound silence fell
when he had uttered that word, with deep but low intonation. Presently Mr. Wood
said: --
"I cannot proceed
without some investigation into what has been asserted, and evidence of its
truth or falsehood."
"The ceremony is
quite broken off," subjoined the voice behind us. "I am in a
condition to prove my allegation: an insuperable impediment to this marriage
exists."
Mr. Rochester heard,
but heeded not: he stood stubborn and rigid, making no movement but to possess
himself of my hand. What a hot and strong grasp he had! and how like quarried
marble was his pale, firm, massive front at this moment! How his eye shone,
still watchful, and yet wild beneath!
Mr. Wood seemed at a
loss. "What is the nature of the impediment?" he asked. "Perhaps
it may be got over -- explained away?"
"Hardly," was
the answer. "I have called it insuperable, and I speak advisedly."
The speaker came
forward and leaned on the rails. He continued, uttering each word distinctly,
calmly, steadily, but not loudly.
"It simply
consists in the existence of a previous marriage. Mr. Rochester has a wife now
living."
My nerves vibrated to
those low-spoken words as they had never vibrated to thunder -- my blood felt
their subtle violence as it had never felt frost or fire; but I was collected,
and in no danger of swooning. I looked at Mr. Rochester: I made him look at me.
His whole face was colourless rock: his eye was both spark and flint. He
disavowed nothing: he seemed as if he would defy all things. Without speaking,
without smiling, without seeming to recognise in me a human being, he only
twined my waist with his arm and riveted me to his side.
"Who are
you?" he asked of the intruder.
"My name is Briggs
-- a solicitor of ---- street, London."
"And you would
thrust on me a wife?"
"I would remind
you of your lady’s existence, Sir, which the law recognises, if you do
not."
"Favour me with an
account of her -- with her name, her parentage, her place of abode."
"Certainly."
Mr. Briggs calmly took a paper from his pocket, and read out in a sort of
official, nasal voice: --
"‘I affirm and can
prove that on the 20th of October A.D. ---- (a date of fifteen years back),
Edward Fairfax Rochester, of Thornfield-Hall, in the county of ----, and of
Ferndean Manor, in ----shire, England, was married to my sister, Bertha
Antoinetta Mason, daughter of Jonas Mason, merchant, and of Antoinetta his
wife, a Creole -- at -- church, Spanish Town, Jamaica. The record of the
marriage will be found in the register of that church -- a copy of it is now in
my possession. Signed, Richard Mason.’"
"That -- if a
genuine document -- may prove I have been married, but it does not prove that
the woman mentioned therein as my wife is still living."
"She was living
three months ago," returned the lawyer.
"How do you
know?"
"I have a witness
to the fact, whose testimony even you, Sir, will scarcely controvert."
"Produce him -- or
go to hell."
"I will produce
him first -- he is on the spot. Mr. Mason, have the goodness to step
forward."
Mr. Rochester, on
hearing the name, set his teeth; he experienced, too, a sort of strong
convulsive quiver; near to him as I was, I felt the spasmodic movement of fury
or despair run through his frame. The second stranger, who had hitherto
lingered in the background, now drew near; a pale face looked over the
solicitor’s shoulder -- yes, it was Mason himself. Mr. Rochester turned and
glared at him. His eye, as I have often said, was a black eye: it had now a
tawny, nay, a bloody light in its gloom; and his face flushed -- olive cheek
and hueless forehead received a glow as from spreading, ascending heart-fire:
and he stirred, lifted his strong arm -- he could have struck Mason, dashed him
on the church-floor -- shocked by ruthless blow the breath from his body -- but
Mason shrank away and cried faintly, "Good God!" Contempt fell cool
on Mr. Rochester -- his passion died as if a blight had shrivelled it up: he
only asked, "What have you to say?"
An inaudible reply
escaped Mason’s white lips.
"The devil is in
it if you cannot answer distinctly. I again demand, what have you to say?"
"Sir -- Sir
--" interrupted the clergyman, "do not forget you are in a sacred
place." Then addressing Mason, he inquired gently, "Are you aware,
Sir, whether or not this gentleman’s wife is still living?"
"Courage,"
urged the lawyer, -- "speak out."
"She is now living
at Thornfield-Hall," said Mason, in more articulate tones: "I saw her
there last April. I am her brother."
"At
Thornfield-Hall!" ejaculated the clergyman. "Impossible! I am an old
resident in this neighbourhood, Sir, and I never heard of a Mrs. Rochester at
Thornfield-Hall."
I saw a grim smile
contort Mr. Rochester’s lips, and he muttered: --
"No -- by God! I
took care that none should hear of it -- or of her under that name." He
mused -- for ten minutes he held counsel with himself: he formed his resolve,
and announced it: --
"Enough! all shall
bolt out at once, like the bullet from the barrel. Wood, close your book and
take off your surplice; John Green (to the clerk), leave the church: there will
be no wedding to-day." The man obeyed.
Mr. Rochester
continued, hardily and recklessly: "Bigamy is an ugly word! -- I meant,
however, to be a bigamist; but fate has out-manoeuvred me, or Providence has
checked me, -- perhaps the last. I am little better than a devil at this
moment; and, as my pastor there would tell me, deserve no doubt the sternest
judgments of God, -- even to the quenchless fire and deathless worm. Gentlemen,
my plan is broken up! -- what this lawyer and his client say is true: I have
been married, and the woman to whom I was married lives! You say you never
heard of a Mrs. Rochester at the house up yonder, Wood; but I daresay you have
many a time inclined your ear to gossip about the mysterious lunatic kept there
under watch and ward. Some have whispered to you that she is my bastard
half-sister: some, my cast-off mistress. I now inform you that she is my wife,
whom I married fifteen years ago, -- Bertha Mason by name; sister of this
resolute personage, who is now, with his quivering limbs and white cheeks,
showing you what a stout heart men may bear. Cheer up, Dick! -- never fear me!
-- I’d almost as soon strike a woman as you. Bertha Mason is mad; and she came
of a mad family; -- idiots and maniacs through three generations! Her mother,
the Creole, was both a mad-woman and a drunkard! -- as I found out after I had
wed the daughter: for they were silent on family secrets before. Bertha, like a
dutiful child, copied her parent in both points. I had a charming partner --
pure, wise, modest: you can fancy I was a happy man. -- I went through rich
scenes! Oh! my experience has been heavenly, if you only knew it! But I owe you
no further explanation. Briggs, Wood, Mason, I invite you all to come up to the
house and visit Mrs. Poole’s patient, and my wife! -- You shall see what sort
of a being I was cheated into espousing, and judge whether or not I had a right
to break the compact, and seek sympathy with something at least human. This
girl," he continued, looking at me, "knew no more than you, Wood, of
the disgusting secret: she thought all was fair and legal, and never dreamt she
was going to be entrapped into a feigned union with a defrauded wretch, already
bound to a bad, mad, and embruted partner! Come all of you, follow!"
Still holding me fast,
he left the church: the three gentlemen came after. At the front door of the
hall we found the carriage.
"Take it back to
the coach-house, John," said Mr. Rochester coolly: "it will not be
wanted to-day."
At our entrance, Mrs.
Fairfax, Adèle, Sophie, Leah, advanced to meet and greet us.
"To the right
about -- every soul!" cried the master; "away with your
congratulations! Who wants them? -- Not I! -- they are fifteen years too
late!"
He passed on and
ascended the stairs, still holding my hand, and still beckoning the gentlemen
to follow him, which they did. We mounted the first staircase, passed up the
gallery, proceeded to the third storey: the low, black door, opened by Mr.
Rochester’s master-key, admitted us to the tapestried room, with its great bed
and its pictorial cabinet.
"You know this
place, Mason," said our guide; "she bit and stabbed you here."
He lifted the hangings
from the wall, uncovering the second door: this, too, he opened. In a room
without a window, there burnt a fire guarded by a high and strong fender, and a
lamp suspended from the ceiling by a chain. Grace Poole bent over the fire,
apparently cooking something in a saucepan. In the deep shade, at the farther
end of the room, a figure ran backwards and forwards. What it was, whether
beast or human being, one could not, at first sight, tell: it grovelled,
seemingly, on all fours; it snatched and growled like some strange wild animal:
but it was covered with clothing, and a quantity of dark, grizzled hair, wild
as a mane, hid its head and face.
"Good-morrow, Mrs.
Poole!" said Mr. Rochester. "How are you? and how is your charge
to-day?"
"We’re tolerable,
Sir, I thank you," replied Grace, lifting the boiling mess carefully on to
the hob: "rather snappish, but not ’rageous."
A fierce cry seemed to
give the lie to her favourable report: the clothed hyena rose up, and stood
tall on its hind-feet.
"Ah, Sir, she sees
you!" exclaimed Grace: "you’d better not stay."
"Only a few moments,
Grace: you must allow me a few moments."
"Take care then,
Sir! -- for God’s sake, take care!"
The maniac bellowed:
she parted her shaggy locks from her visage, and gazed wildly at her visitors.
I recognised well that purple face, -- those bloated features. Mrs. Poole
advanced.
"Keep out of the
way," said Mr. Rochester, thrusting her aside: "she has no knife now,
I suppose, and I’m on my guard!"
"One never knows
what she has, Sir: she is so cunning: it is not in mortal discretion to fathom
her craft."
"We had better
leave her," whispered Mason.
"Go to the
devil!" was his brother-in-law’s recommendation.
"Ware!" cried
Grace. The three gentlemen retreated simultaneously. Mr. Rochester flung me
behind him: the lunatic sprang and grappled his throat viciously, and laid her
teeth to his cheek: they struggled. She was a big woman, in stature almost equalling
her husband, and corpulent besides: she showed virile force in the contest --
more than once she almost throttled him, athletic as he was. He could have
settled her with a well-planted blow: but he would not strike: he would only
wrestle. At last he mastered her arms; Grace Poole gave him a cord, and he
pinioned them behind her: with more rope, which was at hand, he bound her to a
chair. The operation was performed amidst the fiercest yells and the most
convulsive plunges. Mr. Rochester then turned to the spectators: he looked at
them with a smile both acrid and desolate.
"That is my
wife," said he. "Such is the sole conjugal embrace I am ever to know
-- such are the endearments which are to solace my leisure hours! And this is
what I wished to have" (laying his hand on my shoulder): "this young
girl, who stands so grave and quiet at the mouth of hell, looking collectedly
at the gambols of a demon. I wanted her just as a change after that fierce
ragout. Wood and Briggs, look at the difference! Compare these clear eyes with
the red balls yonder -- this face with that mask -- this form with that bulk;
then judge me, priest of the gospel and man of the law, and remember with what
judgment ye judge ye shall be judged! Off with you now. I must shut up my
prize."
We all withdrew. Mr.
Rochester stayed a moment behind us, to give some further order to Grace Poole.
The solicitor addressed me as he descended the stair.
"You, madam,"
said he, "are cleared from all blame: your uncle will be glad to hear it
-- if, indeed, he should be still living -- when Mr. Mason returns to
Madeira."
"My uncle! What of
him? Do you know him?"
"Mr. Mason does.
Mr. Eyre has been the Funchal correspondent of his house for some years. When
your uncle received your letter intimating the contemplated union between
yourself and Mr. Rochester, Mr. Mason, who was staying at Madeira to recruit
his health, on his way back to Jamaica, happened to be with him. Mr. Eyre
mentioned the intelligence; for he knew that my client here was acquainted with
a gentleman of the name of Rochester. Mr. Mason, astonished and distressed as
you may suppose, revealed the real state of matters. Your uncle, I am sorry to
say, is now on a sickbed; from which, considering the nature of his disease --
decline -- and the stage it has reached, it is unlikely he will ever rise. He
could not then hasten to England himself, to extricate you from the snare into
which you had fallen, but he implored Mr. Mason to lose no time in taking steps
to prevent the false marriage. He referred him to me for assistance. I used all
despatch, and am thankful I was not too late: as you, doubtless, must be also.
Were I not morally certain that your uncle will be dead ere you reach Madeira,
I would advise you to accompany Mr. Mason back; but as it is, I think you had
better remain in England till you can hear further, either from or of Mr. Eyre.
Have we anything else to stay for?" he inquired of Mr. Mason.
"No, no -- let us
be gone," was the anxious reply; and without waiting to take leave of Mr.
Rochester, they made their exit at the hall door. The clergyman stayed to
exchange a few sentences, either of admonition or reproof, with his haughty
parishioner; this duty done, he too departed.
I heard him go as I
stood at the half open door of my own room, to which I had now withdrawn. The
house cleared, I shut myself in, fastened the bolt that none might intrude, and
proceeded -- not to weep, not to mourn, I was yet too calm for that, but --
mechanically to take off the wedding dress, and replace it by the stuff gown I
had worn yesterday, as I thought, for the last time. I then sat down: I felt
weak and tired. I leaned my arms on a table, and my head dropped on them. And
now I thought: till now I had only heard, seen, moved -- followed up and down where
I was led or dragged -- watched event rush on event, disclosure open beyond
disclosure: but now, I thought.
The morning had been a
quiet morning enough -- all except the brief scene with the lunatic: the
transaction in the church had not been noisy; there was no explosion of
passion, no loud altercation, no dispute, no defiance or challenge, no tears,
no sobs: a few words had been spoken, a calmly pronounced objection to the
marriage made; some stern, short questions put by Mr. Rochester; answers, explanations
given, evidence adduced; an open admission of the truth had been uttered by my
master; then the living proof had been seen; the intruders were gone, and all
was over.
I was in my own room as
usual -- just myself, without obvious change: nothing had smitten me, orscathed
me, or maimed me. And yet where was the Jane Eyre of yesterday? -- where was
her life? -- where were her prospects?
Jane Eyre, who had been
an ardent, expectant woman -- almost a bride -- was a cold, solitary girl
again: her life was pale; her prospects were desolate. A Christmas frost had
come at midsummer; a white December storm had whirled over June; ice glazed the
ripe apples, drifts crushed the blowing roses; on hayfield and cornfield lay a
frozen shroud: lanes which last night blushed full of flowers, to-day were
pathless with untrodden snow; and the woods, which twelve hours since waved
leafy and fragrant as groves between the tropics, now spread, waste, wild, and
white as pine-forests in wintry Norway. My hopes were all dead -- struck with a
subtle doom, such as, in one night, fell on all the first-born in the land of
Egypt. I looked on my cherished wishes, yesterday so blooming and glowing; they
lay stark, chill, livid corpses that could never revive. I looked at my love:
that feeling which was my master’s -- which he had created; it shivered in my
heart, like a suffering child in a cold cradle; sickness and anguish had seized
it; it could not seek Mr. Rochester’s arms -- it could not derive warmth from
his breast. Oh, never more could it turn to him; for faith was blighted --
confidence destroyed! Mr. Rochester was not to me what he had been; for he was
not what I had thought him. I would not ascribe vice to him; I would not say he
had betrayed me; but the attribute of stainless truth was gone from his idea,
and from his presence I must go: that I perceived well. When -- how -- whither,
I could not yet discern; but he himself, I doubted not, would hurry me from
Thornfield. Real affection, it seemed, he could not have for me; it had been
only fitful passion: that was balked; he would want me no more. I should fear
even to cross his path now: my view must be hateful to him. Oh, how blind had
been my eyes! How weak my conduct!
My eyes were covered
and closed: eddying darkness seemed to swim round me, and reflection came in as
black and confused a flow. Self-abandoned, relaxed, and effortless, I seemed to
have laid me down in the dried-up bed of a great river; I heard a flood
loosened in remote mountains, and felt the torrent come: to rise I had no will,
to flee I had no strength. I lay faint, longing to be dead. One idea only still
throbbed life-like within me -- a remembrance of God: it begot an unuttered
prayer: these words went wandering up and down in my rayless mind, as something
that should be whispered, but no energy was found to express them: --
"Be not far from
me, for trouble is near: there is none to help."
It was near: and as I
had lifted no petition to Heaven to avert it -- as I had neither joined my
hands, nor bent my knees, nor moved my lips -- it came: in full heavy swing the
torrent poured over me. The whole consciousness of my life lorn, my love lost,
my hope quenched, my faith death-struck, swayed full and mighty above me in one
sullen mass. That bitter hour cannot be described: in truth, "the waters
came into my soul; I sank in deep mire: I felt no standing: I came into deep
waters; the floods overflowed me."
SOME time in the
afternoon I raised my head, and looking round and seeing the western sun
gilding the sign of its decline on the wall, I asked, "What am I to
do?"
But the answer my mind
gave -- "Leave Thornfield at once" -- was so prompt, so dread, that I
stopped my ears. I said I could not bear such words now. "That I am not
Edward Rochester’s bride is the least part of my woe," I alleged:
"that I have wakened out of most glorious dreams, and found them all void
and vain, is a horror I could bear and master; but that I must leave him
decidedly, instantly, entirely, is intolerable. I cannot do it."
But, then, a voice
within me averred that I could do it and foretold that I should do it. I
wrestled with my own resolution: I wanted to be weak that I might avoid the
awful passage of further suffering I saw laid out for me; and Conscience,
turned tyrant, held Passion by the throat, told her tauntingly, she had yet but
dipped her dainty foot in the slough, and swore that with that arm of iron he
would thrust her down to unsounded depths of agony.
"Let me be torn
away, then!" I cried. "Let another help me!"
"No; you shall
tear yourself away, none shall help you: you shall yourself pluck out your
right eye; yourself cut off your right hand: your heart shall be the victim,
and you the priest to transfix it."
I rose up suddenly,
terror-struck at the solitude which so ruthless a judge haunted, -- at the
silence which so awful a voice filled. My head swam as I stood erect. I
perceived that I was sickening from excitement and inanition; neither meat nor
drink had passed my lips that day, for I had taken no breakfast. And, with a
strange pang, I now reflected that, long as I had been shut up here, no message
had been sent to ask how I was, or to invite me to come down: not even little
Adèle had tapped at the door; not even Mrs. Fairfax had sought me.
"Friends always forget those whom fortune forsakes," I murmured, as I
undrew the bolt and passed out. I stumbled over an obstacle: my head was still
dizzy, my sight was dim, and my limbs were feeble. I could not soon recover
myself. I fell, but not on to the ground; an outstretched arm caught me. I
looked up -- I was supported by Mr. Rochester, who sat in a chair across my
chamber threshold.
"You come out at
last," he said. "Well, I have been waiting for you long, and
listening: yet not one movement have I heard, nor one sob: five minutes more of
that death-like hush, and I should have forced the lock like a burglar. So you
shun me? -- you shut yourself up and grieve alone! I would rather you had come
and upbraided me with vehemence. You are passionate: I expected a scene of some
kind. I was prepared for the hot rain of tears; only I wanted them to be shed
on my breast: now a senseless floor has received them, or your drenched
handkerchief. But I err: you have not wept at all! I see a white cheek and a
faded eye, but no trace of tears. I suppose, then, your heart has been weeping
blood?
"Well, Jane! not a
word of reproach? Nothing bitter -- nothing poignant? Nothing to cut a feeling
or sting a passion? You sit quietly where I have placed you, and regard me with
a weary, passive look.
"Jane, I never
meant to wound you thus. If the man who had but one little ewe lamb that was
dear to him as a daughter, that ate of his bread and drank of his cup, and lay
in his bosom, had by some mistake slaughtered it at the shambles, he would not
have rued his bloody blunder more than I now rue mine. Will you ever forgive
me?"
Reader! -- I forgave
him at the moment and on the spot. There was such deep remorse in his eye, such
true pity in his tone, such manly energy in his manner; and besides, there was
such unchanged love in his whole look and mien -- I forgave him all: yet not in
words, not outwardly; only at my heart’s core.
"You know I am a
scoundrel, Jane?" ere long he inquired wistfully -- wondering, I suppose,
at my continued silence and tameness, the result rather of weakness than of
will.
"Yes, Sir."
"Then tell me so
roundly and sharply -- don’t spare me."
"I cannot: I am
tired and sick. I want some water." He heaved a sort of shuddering sigh,
and taking me in his arms, carried me downstairs. At first I did not know to
what room he had borne me; all was cloudy to my glazed sight: presently I felt
the reviving warmth of a fire; for, summer as it was, I had become icy cold in
my chamber. He put wine to my lips; I tasted it and revived; then I ate
something he offered me, and was soon myself. I was in the library -- sitting
in his chair -- he was quite near. "If I could go out of life now, without
too sharp a pang, it would be well for me," I thought; "then I should
not have to make the effort of cracking my heart-strings in rending them from
among Mr. Rochester’s. I must leave him, it appears. I do not want to leave him
-- I cannot leave him."
"How are you now,
Jane?"
"Much better, Sir;
I shall be well soon."
"Taste the wine
again, Jane."
I obeyed him; then he
put the glass on the table, stood before me, and looked at me attentively.
Suddenly he turned away, with an inarticulate exclamation, full of passionate
emotion of some kind; he walked fast through the room and came back; he stooped
towards me as if to kiss me; but I remembered caresses were now forbidden. I
turned my face away and put his aside.
"What! -- How is
this?" he exclaimed hastily. "Oh, I know! you won’t kiss the husband
of Bertha Mason? You consider my arms filled and my embraces
appropriated?"
"At any rate,
there is neither room nor claim for me, Sir."
"Why, Jane? I will
spare you the trouble of much talking; I will answer for you -- Because I have
a wife already, you would reply. -- I guess rightly?"
"Yes."
"If you think so,
you must have a strange opinion of me; you must regard me as a plotting
profligate -- a base and low rake who has been simulating disinterested love in
order to draw you into a snare deliberately laid, and strip you of honour and
rob you of self-respect. What do you say to that? I see you can say nothing: in
the first place, you are faint still, and have enough to do to draw your
breath; in the second place, you cannot yet accustom yourself to accuse and
revile me, and besides, the flood-gates of tears are opened, and they would
rush out if you spoke much; and you have no desire to expostulate, to upbraid,
to make a scene: you are thinking how to act -- talking you consider is of no
use. I know you -- I am on my guard."
"Sir, I do not
wish to act against you," I said; and my unsteady voice warned me to
curtail my sentence.
"Not in your sense
of the word, but in mine you are scheming to destroy me. You have as good as
said that I am a married man -- as a married man you will shun me, keep out of
my way: just now you have refused to kiss me. You intend to make yourself a
complete stranger to me: to live under this roof only as Adèle’s governess; if
ever I say a friendly word to you, if ever a friendly feeling inclines you
again to me, you will say, -- "That man had nearly made me his mistress: I
must be ice and rock to him"; and ice and rock you will accordingly
become."
I cleared and steadied
my voice to reply: "All is changed about me, Sir; I must change too --
there is no doubt of that; and to avoid fluctuations of feeling, and continual
combats with recollections and associations, there is only one way -- Adèle
must have a new governess, Sir."
"Oh, Adèle will go
to school -- I have settled that already; nor do I mean to torment you with the
hideous associations and recollections of Thornfield-Hall -- this accursed
place -- this tent of Achan -- this insolent vault, offering the ghastliness of
living death to the light of the open sky -- this narrow stone hell, with its
one real fiend, worse than a legion of such as we imagine. Jane, you shall not
stay here, nor will I. I was wrong ever to bring you to Thornfield-Hall,
knowing as I did how it was haunted. I charged them to conceal from you, before
I ever saw you, all knowledge of the curse of the place; merely because I
feared Adèle never would have a governess to stay if she knew with what inmate
she was housed, and my plans would not permit me to remove the maniac elsewhere
-- though I possess an old house, Ferndean Manor, even more retired and hidden
than this, where I could have lodged her safely enough, had not a scruple about
the unhealthiness of the situation, in the heart of a wood, made my conscience
recoil from the arrangement. Probably those damp walls would soon have eased me
of her charge: but to each villain his own vice; and mine is not a tendency to
indirect assassination, even of what I most hate.
"Concealing the
mad-woman’s neighbourhood from you, however, was something like covering a
child with a cloak and laying it down near a upas-tree: that demon’s vicinage
is poisoned, and always was. But I’ll shut up Thornfield-Hall: I’ll nail up the
front door and board the lower windows: I’ll give Mrs. Poole two hundred a year
to live here with my wife, as you term that fearful hag: Grace will do much for
money, and she shall have her son, the keeper at Grimsby Retreat, to bear her
company and be at hand to give her aid in the paroxysms, when my wife is
prompted by her familiar to burn people in their beds at night, to stab them,
to bite their flesh from their bones, and so on" --
"Sir," I
interrupted him, "you are inexorable for that unfortunate lady: you speak
of her with hate -- with vindictive antipathy. It is cruel -- she cannot help
being mad."
"Jane, my little
darling (so I will call you, for so you are), you don’t know what you are
talking about; you misjudge me again: it is not because she is mad I hate her.
If you were mad, do you think I should hate you?"
"I do indeed,
Sir."
"Then you are
mistaken, and you know nothing about me, and nothing about the sort of love of
which I am capable. Every atom of your flesh is as dear to me as my own: in
pain and sickness it would still be dear. Your mind is my treasure, and if it
were broken, it would be my treasure still: if you raved, my arms should
confine you, and not a strait waistcoat -- your grasp, even in fury, would have
a charm for me: if you flew at me as wildly as that woman did this morning, I
should receive you in an embrace, at least as fond as it would be restrictive.
I should not shrink from you with disgust as I did from her: in your quiet
moments you should have no watcher and no nurse but me; and I could hang over
you with untiring tenderness, though you gave me no smile in return; and never
weary of gazing into your eyes, though they had no longer a ray of recognition
for me. -- But why do I follow that train of ideas? I was talking of removing
you from Thornfield. All, you know, is prepared for prompt departure: to-morrow
you shall go. I only ask you to endure one more night under this roof, Jane;
and then, farewell to its miseries and terrors for ever! I have a place to
repair to, which will be a secure sanctuary from hateful reminiscences, from
unwelcome intrusion -- even from falsehood and slander."
"And take Adèle
with you, Sir," I interrupted; "she will be a companion for
you."
"What do you mean,
Jane? I told you I would send Adèle to school; and what do I want with a child
for a companion, and not my own child, -- a French dancer’s bastard? Why do you
importune me about her! I say, why do you assign Adèle to me for a
companion?"
"You spoke of a
retirement, Sir; and retirement and solitude are dull: too dull for you."
"Solitude!
solitude!" he reiterated with irritation. "I see I must come to an
explanation. I don’t know what sphynx-like expression is forming in your
countenance. You are to share my solitude. Do you understand?"
I shook my head: it
required a degree of courage, excited as he was becoming, even to risk that
mute sign of dissent. He had been walking fast about the room, and he stopped,
as if suddenly rooted to one spot. He looked at me long and hard: I turned my
eyes from him, fixed them on the fire, and tried to assume and maintain a
quiet, collected aspect.
"Now for the hitch
in Jane’s character," he said at last, speaking more calmly than from his
look I had expected him to speak. "The reel of silk has run smoothly
enough so far; but I always knew there would come a knot and a puzzle: here it
is. Now for vexation, and exasperation, and endless trouble! By God! I long to
exert a fraction of Samson’s strength, and break the entanglement like
tow!"
He recommenced his
walk, but soon again stopped, and this time just before me.
"Jane! will you
hear reason?" (he stooped and approached his lips to my ear);
"because, if you won’t, I’ll try violence. His voice was hoarse; his look
that of a man who is just about to burst an insufferable bond and plunge
headlong into wild license. I saw that in another moment, and with one impetus
of frenzy more, I should be able to do nothing with him. The present -- the
passing second of time -- was all I had in which to control and restrain him: a
movement of repulsion, flight, fear would have sealed my doom, -- and his. But
I was not afraid: not in the least. I felt an inward power; a sense of
influence, which supported me. The crisis was perilous; but not without its
charm: such as the Indian, perhaps, feels when he slips over the rapid in his
canoe. I took hold of his clenched hand, loosened the contorted fingers, and
said to him, soothingly, --
"Sit down; I’ll
talk to you as long as you like, and hear all you have to say, whether
reasonable or unreasonable."
He sat down: but he did
not get leave to speak directly. I had been struggling with tears for some
time: I had taken great pains to repress them, because I knew he would not like
to see me weep. Now, however, I considered it well to let them flow as freely
and as long as they liked. If the flood annoyed him, so much the better. So I
gave way and cried heartily.
Soon I heard him
earnestly entreating me to be composed. I said I could not while he was in such
a passion.
"But I am not
angry, Jane: I only love you too well; and you had steeled your little pale
face with such a resolute, frozen look, I could not endure it. Hush, now, and
wipe your eyes."
His softened voice
announced that he was subdued; so I, in my turn, became calm. Now he made an
effort to rest his head on my shoulder, but I would not permit it. Then he
would draw me to him: no.
"Jane! Jane!"
he said -- in such an accent of bitter sadness it thrilled along every nerve I
had; "you don’t love me, then? It was only my station, and the rank of my
wife, that you valued? Now that you think me disqualified to become your
husband, you recoil from my touch as if I were some toad or ape."
These words cut me: yet
what could I do or say? I ought probably to have done or said nothing; but I
was so tortured by a sense of remorse at thus hurting his feelings, I could not
control the wish to drop balm where I had wounded.
"I do love
you," I said, "more than ever: but I must not show or indulge the
feeling: and this is the last time I must express it."
"The last time,
Jane! What! do you think you can live with me, and see me daily, and yet, if
you still love me, be always cold and distant?"
"No, Sir; that I
am certain I could not; and therefore I see there is but one way: but you will
be furious if I mention it."
"Oh, mention it!
If I storm, you have the art of weeping."
"Mr. Rochester, I
must leave you."
"For how long,
Jane? For a few minutes, while you smooth your hair -- which is somewhat
dishevelled; and bathe your face -- which looks feverish?"
"I must leave Adèle
and Thornfield. I must part with you for my whole life: I must begin a new
existence among strange faces and strange scenes."
"Of course: I told
you you should. I pass over the madness about parting from me. You mean you
must become a part of me. As to the new existence, it is all right: you shall
yet be my wife: I am not married. You shall be Mrs. Rochester -- both virtually
and nominally. I shall keep only to you so long as you and I live. You shall go
to a place I have in the south of France: a whitewashed villa on the shores of
the Mediterranean. There you shall live a happy, and guarded, and most innocent
life. Never fear that I wish to lure you into error -- to make you my mistress.
Why did you shake your head? Jane, you must be reasonable, or in truth I shall
again become frantic."
His voice and hand
quivered: his large nostrils dilated; his eye blazed: still I dared to speak.
"Sir, your wife is
living: that is a fact acknowledged this morning by yourself. If I lived with
you as you desire, I should then be your mistress: to say otherwise is
sophistical -- is false."
"Jane, I am not a
gentle-tempered man -- you forget that: I am not long-enduring; I am not cool
and dispassionate. Out of pity to me and yourself, put your finger on my pulse,
feel how it throbs, and -- beware!"
He bared his wrist, and
offered it to me: the blood was forsaking his cheek and lips, they were growing
livid; I was distressed on all hands. To agitate him thus deeply, by a
resistance he so abhorred, was cruel: to yield was out of the question. I did
what human beings do instinctively when they are driven to utter extremity --
looked for aid to one higher than man: the words "God help me!" burst
involuntarily from my lips.
"I am a
fool!" cried Mr. Rochester suddenly. "I keep telling her I am not
married, and do not explain to her why. I forget she knows nothing of the
character of that woman, or of the circumstances attending my infernal union
with her. Oh, I am certain Jane will agree with me in opinion, when she knows
all that I know! Just put your hand in mine, Janet -- that I may have the
evidence of touch as well as sight, to prove you are near me -- and I will in a
few words show you the real state of the case. Can you listen to me?"
"Yes, Sir; for
hours if you will."
"I ask only
minutes. Jane, did you ever hear or know that I was not the eldest son of my house:
that I had once a brother older than I?"
"I remember Mrs.
Fairfax told me so once."
"And did you ever
hear that my father was an avaricious, grasping man?"
"I have understood
something to that effect."
"Well, Jane, being
so, it was his resolution to keep the property together; he could not bear the
idea of dividing his estate and leaving me a fair portion: all, he resolved,
should go to my brother, Rowland. Yet as little could he endure that a son of
his should be a poor man. I must be provided for by a wealthy marriage. He
sought me a partner betimes. Mr. Mason, a West India planter and merchant, was
his old acquaintance. He was certain his possessions were real and vast: he
made inquiries. Mr. Mason, he found, had a son and daughter; and he learned
from him that he could and would give the latter a fortune of thirty thousand
pounds: that sufficed. When I left college, I was sent out to Jamaica, to
espouse a bride already courted for me. My father said nothing about her money;
but he told me Miss Mason was the boast of Spanish Town for her beauty: and
this was no lie. I found her a fine woman, in the style of Blanche Ingram:
tall, dark, and majestic. Her family wished to secure me because I was of a
good race; and so did she. They showed her to me in parties, splendidly
dressed. I seldom saw her alone, and had very little private conversation with
her. She flattered me, and lavishly displayed for my pleasure her charms and
accomplishments. All the men in her circle seemed to admire her and envy me. I
was dazzled, stimulated: my senses were excited; and being ignorant, raw, and
inexperienced, I thought I loved her. There is no folly so besotted that the
idiotic rivalries of society, the prurience, the rashness, the blindness of
youth, will not hurry a man to its commission. Her relatives encouraged me;
competitors piqued me; she allured me: a marriage was achieved almost before I
knew where I was. Oh, I have no respect for myself when I think of that act! --
an agony of inward contempt masters me. I never loved, I never esteemed, I did
not even know her. I was not sure of the existence of one virtue in her nature:
I had marked neither modesty, nor benevolence, nor candour, nor refinement in
her mind or manners -- and, I married her: -- gross, grovelling, mole-eyed
blockhead that I was! With less sin I might have -- But let me remember to whom
I am speaking.
"My bride’s mother
I had never seen: I understood she was dead. The honeymoon over, I learned my
mistake; she was only mad, and shut up in a lunatic asylum. There was a younger
brother, too; a complete dumb idiot. The elder one, whom you have seen (and
whom I cannot hate, whilst I abhor all his kindred, because he has some grains
of affection in his feeble mind, shown in the continued interest he takes in
his wretched sister, and also in a dog-like attachment he once bore me), will
probably be in the same state one day. My father and my brother Rowland knew
all this; but they thought only of the thirty thousand pounds, and joined in
the plot against me.
"These were vile
discoveries; but except for the treachery of concealment, I should have made
them no subject of reproach to my wife, even when I found her nature wholly
alien to mine, her tastes obnoxious to me, her cast of mind common, low, narrow,
and singularly incapable of being led to anything higher, expanded to anything
larger -- when I found that I could not pass a single evening, nor even a
single hour of the day with her in comfort; that kindly conversation could not
be sustained between us, because whatever topic I started, immediately received
from her a turn at once coarse and trite, perverse and imbecile -- when I
perceived that I should never have a quiet or settled household, because no
servant would bear the continued outbreaks of her violent and unreasonable
temper, or the vexations of her absurd, contradictory, exacting orders -- even
then I restrained myself: I eschewed upbraiding, I curtailed remonstrance; I
tried to devour my repentance and disgust in secret; I repressed the deep
antipathy I felt.
"Jane, I will not
trouble you with abominable details: some strong words shall express what I
have to say. I lived with that woman upstairs four years, and before that time
she had tried me indeed: her character ripened and developed with frightful
rapidity; her vices sprang up fast and rank: they were so strong, only cruelty
could check them, and I would not use cruelty. What a pigmy intellect she had,
and what giant propensities! How fearful were the curses those propensities
entailed on me! Bertha Mason, the true daughter of an infamous mother, dragged
me through all the hideous and degrading agonies which must attend a man bound
to a wife at once intemperate and unchaste.
"My brother in the
interval was dead; and at the end of the four years my father died too. I was
rich enough now -- yet poor to hideous indigence: a nature the most gross,
impure, depraved I ever saw, was associated with mine, and called by the law
and by society a part of me. And I could not rid myself of it by any legal
proceedings: for the doctors now discovered that my wife was mad -- her
excesses had prematurely developed the germs of insanity: -- Jane, you don’t
like my narrative; you look almost sick -- shall I defer the rest to another
day?"
"No, Sir, finish
it now; I pity you -- I do earnestly pity you."
"Pity, Jane, from
some people is a noxious and insulting sort of tribute, which one is justified
in hurling back in the teeth of those who offer it; but that is the sort of
pity native to callous, selfish hearts; it is a hybrid, egotistical pain at
hearing of woes, crossed with ignorant contempt for those who have endured
them. But that is not your pity, Jane; it is not the feeling of which your
whole face is full at this moment -- with which your eyes are now almost
overflowing -- with which your heart is heaving -- with which your hand is
trembling in mine. Your pity, my darling, is the suffering mother of love: its
anguish is the very natal pang of the divine passion. I accept it, Jane; let
the daughter have free advent -- my arms wait to receive her."
"Now, Sir,
proceed; what did you do when you found she was mad?"
"Jane -- I
approached the verge of despair; a remnant of self-respect was all that
intervened between me and the gulf. In the eyes of the world, I was doubtless
covered with grimy dishonour; but I resolved to be clean in my own sight -- and
to the last I repudiated the contamination of her crimes, and wrenched myself
from connection with her mental defects. Still, society associated my name and
person with hers; I yet saw her and heard her daily: something of her breath
(faugh!) mixed with the air I breathed; and besides, I remembered I had once
been her husband -- that recollection was then, and is now, inexpressibly
odious to me; moreover, I knew that while she lived I could never be the
husband of another and better wife; and, though five years my senior (her
family and her father had lied to me even in the particular of her age), she
was likely to live as long as I, being as robust in frame as she was infirm in
mind. Thus, at the age of twenty-six, I was hopeless.
"One night I had
been awakened by her yells -- (since the medical men had pronounced her mad,
she had, of course, been shut up) -- it was a fiery West Indian night; one of
the description that frequently precede the hurricanes of those climates. Being
unable to sleep in bed, I got up and opened the window. The air was like
sulphur-steams -- I could find no refreshment anywhere. Mosquitoes came buzzing
in and hummed sullenly round the room; the sea, which I could hear from thence,
rumbled dull like an earthquake -- black clouds were casting up over it; the
moon was setting in the waves, broad and red, like a hot cannon-ball -- she
threw her last bloody glance over a world quivering with the ferment of
tempest. I was physically influenced by the atmosphere and scene, and my ears
were filled with the curses the maniac still shrieked out; wherein she
momentarily mingled my name with such a tone of demon-hate, with such language!
-- no professed harlot ever had a fouler vocabulary than she: though two rooms
off, I heard every word -- the thin partitions of the West India house opposing
but slight obstruction to her wolfish cries.
"‘This life,’ said
I at last, ‘is hell: this is the air -- those are the sounds of the bottomless
pit! I have a right to deliver myself from it if I can. The sufferings of this
mortal state will leave me with the heavy flesh that now cumbers my soul. Of
the fanatic’s burning eternity I have no fear: there is not a future state
worse than this present one -- let me break away, and go home to God!’
"I said this
whilst I knelt down at, and unlocked a trunk which contained a brace of loaded
pistols: I meant to shoot myself. I only entertained the intention for a
moment; for, not being insane, the crisis of exquisite and unalloyed despair,
which had originated the wish and design of self-destruction, was past in a
second.
"A wind fresh from
Europe blew over the ocean and rushed through the open casement: the storm
broke, streamed, thundered, blazed, and the air grew pure. I then framed and
fixed a resolution. While I walked under the dripping orange-trees of my wet
garden, and amongst its drenched pomegranates and pineapples, and while the
refulgent dawn of the tropics kindled round me -- I reasoned thus, Jane: -- and
now listen; for it was true Wisdom that consoled me in that hour, and showed me
the right path to follow.
"The sweet wind
from Europe was still whispering in the refreshed leaves, and the Atlantic was
thundering in glorious liberty; my heart, dried up and scorched for a long
time, swelled to the tone, and filled with living blood -- my being longed for
renewal -- my soul thirsted for a pure draught. I saw hope revive -- and felt
regeneration possible. From a flowery arch at the bottom of my garden I gazed
over the sea -- bluer than the sky: the old world was beyond; clear prospects
opened thus: --
"‘Go,’ said Hope, ‘and
live again in Europe: there it is not known what a sullied name you bear, nor
what a filthy burden is bound to you. You may take the maniac with you to
England; confine her with due attendance and precautions at Thornfield: then
travel yourself to what clime you will, and form what new tie you like. That
woman, who has so abused your long-suffering -- so sullied your name, so
outraged your honour, so blighted your youth, is not your wife, nor are you her
husband. See that she is cared for as her condition demands, and you have done
all that God and humanity require of you. Let her identity, her connection with
yourself, be buried in oblivion: you are bound to impart them to no living
being. Place her in safety and comfort: shelter her degradation with secrecy,
and leave her.’
"I acted precisely
on this suggestion. My father and brother had not made my marriage known to
their acquaintance; because, in the very first letter I wrote to apprise them
of the union -- having already begun to experience extreme disgust of its
consequences, and, from the family character and constitution, seeing a hideous
future opening to me -- I added an urgent charge to keep it secret: and very
soon the infamous conduct of the wife my father had selected for me was such as
to make him blush to own her as his daughter-in-law. Far from desiring to
publish the connection, he became as anxious to conceal it as myself.
"To England, then,
I conveyed her; a fearful voyage I had with such a monster in the vessel. Glad
was I when I at last got her to Thornfield, and saw her safely lodged in that
third storey room, of whose secret inner cabinet she has now for ten years made
a wild beast’s den -- a goblin’s cell. I had some trouble in finding an
attendant for her, as it was necessary to select one on whose fidelity
dependence could be placed; for her ravings would inevitably betray my secret:
besides, she had lucid intervals of days -- sometimes weeks -- which she filled
up with abuse of me. At last I hired Grace Poole from the Grimsby Retreat. She
and the surgeon, Carter (who dressed Mason’s wounds that night he was stabbed
and worried), are the only two I have ever admitted to my confidence. Mrs.
Fairfax may indeed have suspected something, but she could have gained no
precise knowledge as to facts. Grace has, on the whole, proved a good keeper;
though, owing partly to a fault of her own, of which it appears nothing can
cure her, and which is incident to her harassing profession, her vigilance has
been more than once lulled and baffled. The lunatic is both cunning and
malignant; she has never failed to take advantage of her guardian’s temporary
lapses; once to secrete the knife with which she stabbed her brother, and twice
to possess herself of the key of her cell, and issue therefrom in the
night-time. On the first of these occasions, she perpetrated the attempt to
burn me in my bed; on the second, she paid that ghastly visit to you. I thank
Providence, who watched over you, that she then spent her fury on your wedding
apparel, which perhaps brought back vague reminiscences of her own bridal days:
but on what might have happened, I cannot endure to reflect. When I think of
the thing which flew at my throat this morning, hanging its black and scarlet
visage over the nest of my dove, my blood curdles --"
"And what,
Sir," I asked, while he paused, "did you do when you had settled her
here? Where did you go?"
"What did I do,
Jane? I transformed myself into a Will-o’-the-wisp. Where did I go? I pursued
wanderings as wild as those of the March-spirit. I sought the Continent, and
went devious through all its lands. My fixed desire was to seek and find a good
and intelligent woman, whom I could love: a contrast to the fury I left at
Thornfield --"
"But you could not
marry, Sir."
"I had determined
and was convinced that I could and ought. It was not my original intention to
deceive, as I have deceived you. I meant to tell my tale plainly, and make my
proposals openly: and it appeared to me so absolutely rational that I should be
considered free to love and be loved, I never doubted some woman might be found
willing and able to understand my case and accept me, in spite of the curse
with which I was burdened."
"Well, Sir?"
"When you are
inquisitive, Jane, you always make me smile. You open your eyes like an eager
bird, and make every now and then a restless movement, as if answers in speech
did not flow fast enough for you, and you wanted to read the tablet of one’s
heart. But before I go on, tell me what you mean by your ‘Well, Sir?’ It is a
small phrase very frequent with you; and which many a time has drawn me on and
on through interminable talk: I don’t very well know why."
"I mean, -- What
next? How did you proceed? What came of such an event?"
"Precisely! and
what do you wish to know now?"
"Whether you found
any one you liked: whether you asked her to marry you; and what she said."
"I can tell you
whether I found any one I liked, and whether I asked her to marry me: but what
she said is yet to be recorded in the book of Fate. For ten long years I roved
about, living first in one capital, then another: sometimes in St. Petersburg;
oftener in Paris; occasionally in Rome, Naples, and Florence. Provided with
plenty of money and the passport of an old name, I could choose my own society:
no circles were closed against me. I sought my ideal of a woman amongst English
ladies, French countesses, Italian signoras, and German grafinnen. I could not
find her. Sometimes, for a fleeting moment, I thought I caught a glance, heard
a tone, beheld a form, which announced the realisation of my dream: but I was
presently undeceived. You are not to suppose that I desired perfection, either
of mind or person. I longed only for what suited me -- for the antipodes of the
Creole: and I longed vainly. Amongst them all I found not one whom, had I been
ever so free, I -- warned as I was of the risks, the horrors, the loathings of
incongruous unions -- would have asked to marry me. Disappointment made me
reckless. I tried dissipation -- never debauchery: that I hated, and hate. That
was my Indian Messalina’s attribute: rooted disgust at it and her restrained me
much, even in pleasure. Any enjoyment that bordered on riot seemed to approach
me to her and her vices, and I eschewed it.
"Yet I could not
live alone; so I tried the companionship of mistresses. The first I chose was Céline
Varens -- another of those steps which make a man spurn himself when he recalls
them. You already know what she was, and how my liaison with her terminated.
She had two successors: an Italian, Giacinta, and a German, Clara; both
considered singularly handsome. What was their beauty to me in a few weeks?
Giacinta was unprincipled and violent: I tired of her in three months. Clara
was honest and quiet; but heavy, mindless, and unimpressible: not one whit to
my taste. I was glad to give her a sufficient sum to set her up in a good line
of business, and so get decently rid of her. But, Jane, I see by your face you
are not forming a very favourable opinion of me just now. You think me an
unfeeling, loose-principled rake: don’t you?"
"I don’t like you
so well as I have done sometimes, indeed, Sir. Did it not seem to you in the
least wrong to live in that way, first with one mistress and then another? You
talk of it as a mere matter of course."
"It was with me;
and I did not like it. It was a grovelling fashion of existence: I should never
like to return to it. Hiring a mistress is the next worse thing to buying a
slave: both are often by nature, and always by position, inferior: and to live
familiarly with inferiors is degrading. I now hate the recollection of the time
I passed with Céline, Giacinta, and Clara."
I felt the truth of
these words; and I drew from them the certain inference, that if I were so far
to forget myself and all the teaching that had ever been instilled into me, as
-- under any pretext -- with any justification -- through any temptation -- to
become the successor of these poor girls, he would one day regard me with the
same feeling which now in his mind desecrated their memory. I did not give
utterance to this conviction: it was enough to feel it. I impressed it on my
heart, that it might remain there to serve me as aid in the time of trial.
"Now, Jane, why
don’t you say ‘Well, Sir?’ I have not done. You are looking grave. You
disapprove of me still, I see. But let me come to the point. Last January, rid
of all mistresses -- in a harsh, bitter frame of mind, the result of a useless,
roving, lonely life -- corroded with disappointment, sourly disposed against
all men, and especially against all womankind (for I began to regard the notion
of an intellectual, faithful, loving woman as a mere dream), recalled by
business, I came back to England.
"On a frosty
winter afternoon, I rode in sight of Thornfield Hall. Abhorred spot! I expected
no peace -- no pleasure there. On a stile in Hay Lane I saw a quiet little
figure sitting by itself. I passed it as negligently as I did the pollard
willow opposite to it: I had no presentiment of what it would be to me; no
inward warning that the arbitress of my life -- my genius for good or evil --
waited there in humble guise. I did not know it, even when, on the occasion of
Mesrour’s accident, it came up and gravely offered me help. Childish and
slender creature! It seemed as if a linnet had hopped to my foot and proposed
to bear me on its tiny wing. I was surly; but the thing would not go: it stood
by me with strange perseverance, and looked and spoke with a sort of authority.
I must be aided, and by that hand: and aided I was.
"When once I had
pressed the frail shoulder, something new -- a fresh sap and sense -- stole
into my frame. It was well I had learnt that this elf must return to me -- that
it belonged to my house down below -- or I could not have felt it pass away
from under my hand, and seen it vanish behind the dim hedge, without singular
regret. I heard you come home that night, Jane, though probably you were not
aware that I thought of you or watched for you. The next day I observed you --
myself unseen -- for half an hour, while you played with Adèle in the gallery.
It was a snowy day, I recollect, and you could not go out of doors. I was in my
room; the door was ajar: I could both listen and watch. Adèle claimed your
outward attention for a while; yet I fancied your thoughts were elsewhere: but
you were very patient with her, my little Jane; you talked to her and amused
her a long time. When at last she left you, you lapsed at once into deep
reverie: you betook yourself slowly to pace the gallery. Now and then, in
passing a casement, you glanced out at the thick-falling snow; you listened to
the sobbing wind, and again you paced gently on and dreamed. I think those day
visions were not dark: there was a pleasurable illumination in your eye
occasionally, a soft excitement in your aspect, which told of no bitter,
bilious, hypochondriac brooding: your look revealed rather the sweet musings of
youth when its spirit follows on willing wings the flight of Hope up and on to
an ideal heaven. The voice of Mrs. Fairfax, speaking to a servant in the hall,
wakened you: and how curiously you smiled to and at yourself, Janet! There was
much sense in your smile: it was very shrewd, and seemed to make light of your
own abstraction. It seemed to say -- "My fine visions are all very well,
but I must not forget they are absolutely unreal. I have a rosy sky and a green
flowery Eden in my brain; but without, I am perfectly aware, lies at my feet a
rough tract to travel, and around me gather black tempests to encounter."
You ran downstairs and demanded of Mrs. Fairfax some occupation: the weekly
house accounts to make up, or something of that sort, I think it was. I was
vexed with you for getting out of my sight.
"Impatiently I
waited for evening, when I might summon you to my presence. An unusual -- to me
-- a perfectly new character I suspected was yours: I desired to search it
deeper and know it better. You entered the room with a look and air at once shy
and independent: you were quaintly dressed -- much as you are now. I made you
talk: ere long I found you full of strange contrasts. Your garb and manner were
restricted by rule; your air was often diffident, and altogether that of one
refined by nature, but absolutely unused to society, and a good deal afraid of
making herself disadvantageously conspicuous by some solecism or blunder; yet
when addressed, you lifted a keen, a daring, and a glowing eye to your
interlocutor’s face: there was penetration and power in each glance you gave;
when plied by close questions, you found ready and round answers. Very soon you
seemed to get used to me: I believe you felt the existence of sympathy between
you and your grim and cross master, Jane; for it was astonishing to see how
quickly a certain pleasant ease tranquillised your manner: snarl as I would,
you showed no surprise, fear, annoyance, or displeasure at my moroseness; you
watched me, and now and then smiled at me with a simple yet sagacious grace I
cannot describe. I was at once content and stimulated with what I saw: I liked
what I had seen, and wished to see more. Yet, for a long time, I treated you
distantly, and sought your company rarely. I was an intellectual epicure, and
wished to prolong the gratification of making this novel and piquant
acquaintance: besides, I was for a while troubled with a haunting fear that if
I handled the flower freely its bloom would fade -- the sweet charm of
freshness would leave it. I did not then know that it was no transitory
blossom, but rather the radiant resemblance of one, cut in an indestructible
gem. Moreover, I wished to see whether you would seek me if I shunned you --
but you did not; you kept in the schoolroom as still as your own desk and
easel; if by chance I met you, you passed me as soon, and with as little token
of recognition, as was consistent with respect. Your habitual expression in
those days, Jane, was a thoughtful look; not despondent, for you were not
sickly; but not buoyant, for you had little hope, and no actual pleasure. I
wondered what you thought of me -- or if you ever thought of me; to find this
out, I resumed my notice of you. There was something glad in your glance, and
genial in your manner, when you conversed: I saw you had a social heart; it was
the silent schoolroom -- it was the tedium of your life that made you mournful.
I permitted myself the delight of being kind to you; kindness stirred emotion
soon: your face became soft in expression, your tones gentle; I liked my name
pronounced by your lips in a grateful happy accent. I used to enjoy a chance
meeting with you, Jane, at this time: there was a curious hesitation in your
manner: you glanced at me with a slight trouble -- a hovering doubt: you did
not know what my caprice might be -- whether I was going to play the master and
be stern, or the friend and be benignant. I was now too fond of you often to
simulate the first whim; and, when I stretched my hand out cordially, such
bloom and light and bliss rose to your young, wistful features, I had much ado
often to avoid straining you then and there to my heart."
"Don’t talk any
more of those days, Sir," I interrupted, furtively dashing away some tears
from my eyes; his language was torture to me; for I knew what I must do -- and
do soon -- and these reminiscences, and these revelations of his feelings, only
made my work more difficult.
"No, Jane,"
he returned: "what necessity is there to dwell on the Past, when the
Present is so much surer -- the Future so much brighter?"
I shuddered to hear the
infatuated assertion.
"You see now how
the case stands -- do you not?" he continued. "After a youth and
manhood passed half in unutterable misery and half in dreary solitude, I have
for the first time found what I can truly love -- I have found you. You are my
sympathy- my better self- my good angel. I am bound to you with a strong
attachment. I think you good, gifted, lovely: a fervent, a solemn passion is
conceived in my heart; it leans to you, draws you to my centre and spring of
life, wraps my existence about you, and, kindling in pure, powerful flame,
fuses you and me in one.
"It was because I
felt and knew this, that I resolved to marry you. To tell me that I had already
a wife is empty mockery: you know now that I had but a hideous demon. I was
wrong to attempt to deceive you; but I feared a stubbornness that exists in
your character. I feared early instilled prejudice: I wanted to have you safe
before hazarding confidences. This was cowardly: I should have appealed to your
nobleness and magnanimity at first, as I do now -- opened to you plainly my
life of agony -- described to you my hunger and thirst after a higher and
worthier existence -- shown to you, not my resolution (that word is weak), but
my resistless bent to love faithfully and well, where I am faithfully and well
loved in return. Then I should have asked you to accept my pledge of fidelity
and to give me yours. Jane -- give it me now."
A pause.
"Why are you
silent, Jane?"
I was experiencing an
ordeal: a hand of fiery iron grasped my vitals. Terrible moment: full of
struggle, blackness, burning! Not a human being that ever lived could wish to
be loved better than I was loved; and him who thus loved me I absolutely
worshipped: and I must renounce love and idol. One drear word comprised my
intolerable duty -- "Depart!"
"Jane, you
understand what I want of you? Just this promise -- ‘I will be yours, Mr.
Rochester.’"
"Mr. Rochester, I
will not be yours."
Another long silence.
"Jane!"
recommenced he, with a gentleness that broke me down with grief, and turned me
stone-cold with ominous terror -- for this still voice was the pant of a lion
rising -- "Jane, do you mean to go one way in the world, and to let me go
another?"
"I do."
"Jane"
(bending towards and embracing me), "do you mean it now?"
"I do."
"And now?"
softly kissing my forehead and cheek.
"I do --"
extricating myself from restraint rapidly and completely.
"Oh, Jane, this is
bitter! This -- this is wicked. It would not be wicked to love me."
"It would to obey
you."
A wild look raised his
brows -- crossed his features: he rose; but he forbore yet. I laid my hand on
the back of a chair for support: I shook, I feared -- but I resolved.
"One instant,
Jane. Give one glance to my horrible life when you are gone. All happiness will
be torn away with you. What then is left? For a wife I have but the maniac
up-stairs: as well might you refer me to some corpse in yonder churchyard. What
shall I do, Jane? Where turn for a companion and for some hope?"
"Do as I do: trust
in God and yourself. Believe in heaven. Hope to meet again there."
"Then you will not
yield?"
"No."
"Then you condemn
me to live wretched and to die accursed?" His voice rose.
"I advise you to
live sinless, and I wish you to die tranquil."
"Then you snatch
love and innocence from me? You fling me back on lust for a passion -- vice for
an occupation?"
"Mr. Rochester, I
no more assign this fate to you than I grasp at it for myself. We were born to
strive and endure -- you as well as I: do so. You will forget me before I
forget you."
"You make me a
liar by such language: you sully my honour. I declared I could not change: you
tell me to my face I shall change soon. And what a distortion in your judgment,
what a perversity in your ideas, is proved by your conduct! Is it better to
drive a fellow-creature to despair than to transgress a mere human law -- no
man being injured by the breach? for you have neither relatives nor
acquaintances whom you need fear to offend by living with me?"
This was true: and
while he spoke my very conscience and reason turned traitors against me, and
charged me with crime in resisting him. They spoke almost as loud as Feeling:
and that clamoured wildly. "Oh, comply!" it said. "Think of his
misery; think of his danger -- look at his state when left alone; remember his
headlong nature; consider the recklessness following on despair -- soothe him;
save him; love him; tell him you love him and will be his. Who in the world
cares for you? or who will be injured by what you do?"
Still indomitable was
the reply -- "I care for myself. The more solitary, the more friendless,
the more unsustained I am, the more I will respect myself. I will keep the law
given by God; sanctioned by man. I will hold to the principles received by me
when I was sane, and not mad -- as I am now. Laws and principles are not for
the times when there is no temptation: they are for such moments as this, when
body and soul rise in mutiny against their rigour; stringent are they;
inviolate they shall be. If at my individual convenience I might break them,
what would be their worth? They have a worth -- so I have always believed; and
if I cannot believe it now, it is because I am insane -- quite insane: with my
veins running fire, and my heart beating faster than I can count its throbs.
Preconceived opinions, foregone determinations, are all I have at this hour to
stand by: there I plant my foot."
I did. Mr. Rochester,
reading my countenance, saw I had done so. His fury was wrought to the highest:
he must yield to it for a moment, whatever followed; he crossed the floor and
seized my arm and grasped my waist. He seemed to devour me with his flaming
glance: physically, I felt, at the moment, powerless as stubble exposed to the
draught and glow of a furnace -- mentally, I still possessed my soul, and with
it the certainty of ultimate safety. The soul, fortunately, has an interpreter
-- often an unconscious, but still a truthful interpreter -- in the eye. My eye
rose to his; and while I looked in his fierce face I gave an involuntary sigh;
his gripe was painful, and my overtaxed strength almost exhausted.
"Never," said
he, as he ground his teeth, "never was anything at once so frail and so
indomitable. A mere reed she feels in my hand!" (And he shook me with the
force of his hold.) "I could bend her with my finger and thumb: and what
good would it do if I bent, if I uptore, if I crushed her? Consider that eye:
consider the resolute, wild, free thing looking out of it, defying me, with
more than courage -- with a stern triumph. Whatever I do with its cage, I
cannot get at it -- the savage, beautiful creature! If I tear, if I rend the
slight prison, my outrage will only let the captive loose. Conqueror I might be
of the house; but the inmate would escape to heaven before I could call myself
possessor of its clay dwelling-place. And it is you, spirit -- with will and
energy, and virtue and purity -- that I want: not alone your brittle frame. Of
yourself you could come with soft flight and nestle against my heart, if you
would: seized against your will, you will elude the grasp like an essence --
you will vanish ere I inhale your fragrance. Oh! come, Jane, come!"
As he said this, he
released me from his clutch, and only looked at me. The look was far worse to
resist than the frantic strain: only an idiot, however, would have succumbed
now. I had dared and baffled his fury; I must elude his sorrow: retired to the
door.
"You are going,
Jane?"
"I am going,
Sir."
"You are leaving
me?"
"Yes."
"You will not
come? You will not be my comforter, my rescuer? My deep love, my wild woe, my
frantic prayer, are all nothing to you?"
What unutterable pathos
was in his voice! How hard it was to reiterate firmly, "I am going."
"Jane!"
"Mr.
Rochester!"
"Withdraw, then,
-- I consent -- but remember, you leave me here in anguish. Go up to your own
room; think over all I have said, and, Jane, cast a glance on my sufferings --
think of me."
He turned away; he
threw himself on his face on the sofa. "Oh, Jane! my hope -- my love -- my
life!" broke in anguish from his lips. Then came a deep, strong sob.
I had already gained
the door; but, reader, I walked back -- walked back as determinedly as I had
retreated. I knelt down by him; I turned his face from the cushion to me; I
kissed his cheek; I smoothed his hair with my hand.
"God bless you, my
dear master!" I said. "God keep you from harm and wrong -- direct
you, solace you -- reward you well for your past kindness to me."
"Little Jane’s
love would have been my best reward," he answered; "without it, my
heart is broken. But Jane will give me her love: yes -- nobly,
generously."
Up the blood rushed to
his face; forth flashed the fire from his eyes; erect he sprang; he held his
arms out; but I evaded the embrace, and at once quitted the room.
"Farewell!"
was the cry of my heart as I left him. Despair added, "Farewell for
ever!"
*
* * *
* *
That night I never
thought to sleep; but a slumber fell on me as soon as I lay down in bed. I was
transported in thought to the scenes of childhood: I dreamt I lay in the
red-room at Gateshead; that the night was dark, and my mind impressed with
strange fears. The light that long ago had struck me into syncope, recalled in
this vision, seemed glidingly to mount the wall, and tremblingly to pause in
the centre of the obscured ceiling. I lifted up my head to look: the roof
resolved to clouds, high and dim; the gleam was such as the moon imparts to
vapours she is about to sever. I watched her come -- watched with the strangest
anticipation; as though some word of doom were to be written on her disk. She
broke forth as never moon yet burst from cloud: a hand first penetrated the
sable folds and waved them away; then, not a moon, but a white human form shone
in the azure, inclining a glorious brow earthward. It gazed and gazed on me. It
spoke to my spirit: immeasurably distant was the tone, yet so near, it
whispered in my heart --
"My daughter, flee
temptation."
"Mother, I
will."
So I answered after I
had waked from the trancelike dream. It was yet night, but July nights are
short: soon after midnight, dawn comes. "It cannot be too early to
commence the task I have to fulfil," thought I. I rose: I was dressed; for
I had taken off nothing but my shoes. I knew where to find in my drawers some
linen, a locket, a ring. In seeking these articles, I encountered the beads of
a pearl necklace Mr. Rochester had forced me to accept a few days ago. I left
that; it was not mine: it was the visionary bride’s who had melted in air. The
other articles I made up in a parcel; my purse, containing twenty shillings (it
was all I had), I put in my pocket: I tied on my straw bonnet, pinned my shawl,
took the parcel and my slippers, which I would not put on yet, and stole from
my room.
"Farewell, kind
Mrs. Fairfax!" I whispered, as I glided past her door. "Farewell, my
darling Adèle!" I said, as I glanced towards the nursery. No thought could
be admitted of entering to embrace her. I had to deceive a fine ear: for aught
I knew it might now be listening.
I would have got past
Mr. Rochester’s chamber without a pause; but my heart momentarily stopping its
beat at that threshold, my foot was forced to stop also. No sleep was there:
the inmate was walking restlessly from wall to wall; and again and again he
sighed while I listened. There was a heaven -- a temporary heaven -- in this
room for me, if I chose: I had but to go in and to say --
"Mr. Rochester, I
will love you and live with you through life till death," and a fount of
rapture would spring to my lips. I thought of this.
That kind master, who
could not sleep now, was waiting with impatience for day. He would send for me
in the morning; I should be gone. He would have me sought for: vainly. He would
feel himself forsaken; his love rejected: he would suffer; perhaps grow desperate.
I thought of this too. My hand moved towards the lock: I caught it back, and
glided on.
Drearily I wound my way
downstairs: I knew what I had to do, and I did it mechanically. I sought the
key of the side-door in the kitchen; I sought, too, a phial of oil and a
feather; I oiled the key and the lock. I got some water, I got some bread: for
perhaps I should have to walk far; and my strength, sorely shaken of late, must
not break down. All this I did without one sound. I opened the door, passed out,
shut it softly. Dim dawn glimmered in the yard. The great gates were closed and
locked; but a wicket in one of them was only latched. Through that I departed:
it, too, I shut; and now I was out of Thornfield.
A mile off, beyond the
fields, lay a road which stretched in the contrary direction to Millcote; a
road I had never travelled, but often noticed, and wondered where it led:
thither I bent my steps. No reflection was to be allowed now: not one glance
was to be cast back; not even one forward. Not one thought was to be given
either to the past or to the future. The first was a page so heavenly sweet --
so deadly sad -- that to read one line of it would dissolve my courage and
break down my energy. The last was an awful blank: something like the world when
the deluge was gone by.
I skirted fields, and
hedges, and lanes till after sunrise. I believe it was a lovely summer morning:
I know my shoes, which I had put on when I left the house, were soon wet with
dew. But I looked neither to rising sun, nor smiling sky, nor wakening nature.
He who is taken out to pass through a fair scene to the scaffold, thinks not of
the flowers that smile on his road, but of the block and axe-edge; of the
disseverment of bone and vein; of the grave gaping at the end: and I thought of
drear flight and homeless wandering -- and oh! with agony I thought of what I
left. I could not help it. I thought of him now -- in his room -- watching the
sunrise; hoping I should soon come to say I would stay with him and be his. I
longed to be his; I panted to return: it was not too late; I could yet spare
him the bitter pang of bereavement. As yet my flight, I was sure, was
undiscovered. I could go back and be his comforter -- his pride; his redeemer
from misery, perhaps from ruin. Oh, that fear of his self-abandonment -- far
worse than my abandonment -- how it goaded me! It was a barbed arrow-head in my
breast; it tore me when I tried to extract it; it sickened me when remembrance
thrust it farther in. Birds began singing in brake and copse: birds were
faithful to their mates; birds were emblems of love. What was I? In the midst
of my pain of heart and frantic effort of principle, I abhorred myself. I had
no solace from self-approbation: none even from self-respect. I had injured --
wounded -- left my master. I was hateful in my own eyes. Still I could not
turn, nor retrace one step. God must have led me on. As to my own will or
conscience, impassioned grief had trampled one and stifled the other. I was
weeping wildly as I walked along my solitary way: fast, fast I went like one
delirious. A weakness, beginning inwardly, extending to the limbs, seized me,
and I fell: I lay on the ground some minutes, pressing my face to the wet turf.
I had some fear -- or hope -- that here I should die: but I was soon up;
crawling forwards on my hands and knees, and then again raised to my feet -- as
eager and as determined as ever to reach the road.
When I got there, I was
forced to sit to rest me under the hedge; and while I sat, I heard wheels, and
saw a coach come on. I stood up and lifted my hand; it stopped. I asked where
it was going: the driver named a place a long way off, and where I was sure Mr.
Rochester had no connections. I asked for what sum he would take me there; he
said thirty shillings; I answered I had but twenty; well, he would try to make
it do. He further gave me leave to get into the inside, as the vehicle was
empty: I entered, was shut in, and it rolled on its way.
Gentle reader, may you
never feel what I then felt! May your eyes never shed such stormy, scalding,
heart-wrung tears as poured from mine. May you never appeal to Heaven in
prayers so hopeless and so agonised as in that hour left my lips; for never may
you, like me, dread to be the instrument of evil to what you wholly love.
TWO days are passed. It
is a summer evening; the coachman has set me down at a place called Whitcross;
he could take me no farther for the sum I had given, and I was not possessed of
another shilling in the world. The coach is a mile off by this time; I am
alone. At this moment I discover that I forgot to take my parcel out of the
pocket of the coach, where I had placed it for safety; there it remains, there
it must remain; and now, I am absolutely destitute.
Whitcross is no town,
nor even a hamlet; it is but a stone pillar set up where four roads meet:
whitewashed, I suppose, to be more obvious at a distance and in darkness. Four
arms spring from its summit: the nearest town to which these point is,
according to the inscription, distant ten miles; the farthest, above twenty.
From the well-known names of these towns I learn in what county I have lighted;
a north-midland shire, dusk with moorland, ridged with mountain: this I see.
There are great moors behind and on each hand of me; there are waves of
mountains far beyond that deep valley at my feet. The population here must be
thin, and I see no passengers on these roads: they stretch out east, west,
north, and south-white, broad, lonely; they are all cut in the moor, and the
heather grows deep and wild to their very verge. Yet a chance traveller might
pass by; and I wish no eye to see me now: strangers would wonder what I am
doing, lingering here at the sign-post, evidently objectless and lost. I might
be questioned: I could give no answer but what would sound incredible and
excite suspicion. Not a tie holds me to human society at this moment -- not a
charm or hope calls me where my fellow-creatures are -- none that saw me would
have a kind thought or a good wish for me. I have no relative but the universal
mother, Nature: I will seek her breast and ask repose.
I struck straight into
the heath; I held on to a hollow I saw deeply furrowing the brown moorside; I
waded, knee-deep, in its dark growth; I turned with its turnings, and finding a
moss-blackened granite crag in a hidden angle, I sat down under it. High banks
of moor were about me; the crag protected my head: the sky was over that.
Some time passed before
I felt tranquil even here: I had a vague dread that wild cattle might be near,
or that some sportsman or poacher might discover me. If a gust of wind swept
the waste, I looked up, fearing it was the rush of a bull; if a plover
whistled, I imagined it a man. Finding my apprehensions unfounded, however, and
calmed by the deep silence that reigned as evening declined at nightfall, I
took confidence. As yet I had not thought; I had only listened, watched,
dreaded; now I regained the faculty of reflection.
What was I to do? Where
to go? Oh, intolerable questions, when I could do nothing and go nowhere! --
when a long way must yet be measured by my weary, trembling limbs before I
could reach human habitation -- when cold charity must be entreated before I
could get a lodging: reluctant sympathy importuned, almost certain repulse
incurred, before my tale could be listened to, or one of my wants relieved!
I touched the heath: it
was dry, and yet warm with the heat of the summer day. I looked at the sky; it
was pure: a kindly star twinkled just above the chasm ridge. The day fell, but
with propitious softness; no breeze whispered. Nature seemed to me benign and
good; I thought she loved me, outcast as I was; and I, who from man could
anticipate only mistrust, rejection, insult, clung to her with filial fondness.
To-night, at least, I would be her guest -- as I was her child: my mother would
lodge me without money and without price. I had one morsel of bread yet: the
remnant of a roll I had bought in a town we passed through at noon with a stray
penny -- my last coin. I saw ripe bilberries gleaming here and there, like jet
beads in the heath: I gathered a handful and ate them with the bread. My
hunger, sharp before, was, if not satisfied, appeased by this hermit’s meal. I
said my evening prayers at its conclusion, and then chose my couch.
Beside the crag the
heath was very deep: when I lay down my feet were buried in it; rising high on
each side, it left only a narrow space for the night-air to invade. I folded my
shawl double, and spread it over me for a coverlet; a low, mossy swell was my
pillow. Thus lodged, I was not, at least at the commencement of the night,
cold.
My rest might have been
blissful enough, only a sad heart broke it. It plained of its gaping wounds,
its inward bleeding, its riven chords. It trembled for Mr. Rochester and his
doom; it bemoaned him with bitter pity; it demanded him with ceaseless longing;
and, impotent as a bird with both wings broken, it still quivered its shattered
pinions in vain attempts to seek him.
Worn out with this
torture of thought, I rose to my knees. Night was come, and her planets were
risen: a safe, still night: too serene for the companionship of fear. We know
that God is everywhere; but certainly we feel His presence most when His works
are on the grandest scale spread before us; and it is in the unclouded
night-sky, where His worlds wheel their silent course, that we read clearest
His infinitude, His omnipotence, His omnipresence. I had risen to my knees to
pray for Mr. Rochester. Looking up, I, with tear-dimmed eyes, saw the mighty
milky-way. Remembering what it was -- what countless systems there swept space
like a soft trace of light -- I felt the might and strength of God. Sure was I
of His efficiency to save what He had made: convinced I grew that neither earth
should perish, nor one of the souls it treasured. I turned my prayer to
thanksgiving: the Source of Life was also the Saviour of spirits. Mr. Rochester
was safe: he was God’s, and by God would he be guarded. I again nestled to the
breast of the hill; and ere long in sleep forgot sorrow.
But next day, Want came
to me pale and bare. Long after the little birds had left their nests; long
after bees had come in the sweet prime of day to gather the heath honey before
the dew was dried -- when the long morning shadows were curtailed, and the sun
filled earth and sky -- I got up, and I looked round me.
What a still, hot,
perfect day! What a golden desert this spreading moor! Everywhere sunshine. I
wished I could live in it and on it. I saw a lizard run over the crag; I saw a
bee busy among the sweet bilberries. I would fain at the moment have become bee
or lizard, that I might have found fitting nutriment, permanent shelter here.
But I was a human being, and had a human being’s wants: I must not linger where
there was nothing to supply them. I rose; I looked back at the bed I had left.
Hopeless of the future, I wished but this -- that my Maker had that night
thought good to require my soul of me while I slept; and that this weary frame,
absolved by death from further conflict with fate, had now but to decay
quietly, and mingle in peace with the soil of this wilderness. Life, however,
was yet in my possession, with all its requirements, and pains, and
responsibilities. The burden must be carried; the want provided for; the
suffering endured; the responsibility fulfilled. I set out.
Whitcross regained, I
followed a road which led from the sun, now fervent and high. By no other
circumstance had I will to decide my choice. I walked a long time, and when I
thought I had nearly done enough, and might conscientiously yield to the
fatigue that almost overpowered me -- might relax this forced action, and,
sitting down on a stone I saw near, submit resistlessly to the apathy that
clogged heart and limb -- I heard a bell chime -- a church bell.
I turned in the
direction of the sound, and there, amongst the romantic hills, whose changes
and aspect I had ceased to note an hour ago, I saw a hamlet and a spire. All
the valley at my right hand was full of pasture-fields, and cornfields, and
wood; and a glittering stream ran zigzag through the varied shades of green,
the mellowing grain, the sombre wood-land, the clear and sunny lea. Recalled by
the rumbling of wheels to the road before me, I saw a heavily-laden waggon
labouring up the hill, and not far beyond were two cows and their drover. Human
life and human labour were near. I must struggle on: strive to live and bend to
toil like the rest.
About two o’clock,
P.M., I entered the village. At the bottom of its one street there was a little
shop with some cakes of bread in the window. I coveted a cake of bread. With
that refreshment I could perhaps regain a degree of energy: without it, it
would be difficult to proceed. The wish to have some strength and some vigour
returned to me as soon as I was amongst my fellow-beings. I felt it would be
degrading to faint with hunger on the causeway of a hamlet. Had I nothing about
me I could offer in exchange for one of these rolls? I considered. I had a
small silk handkerchief tied round my throat; I had my gloves. I could hardly
tell how men and women in extremities of destitution proceeded. I did not know
whether either of these articles would be accepted: probably they would not;
but I must try.
I entered the shop: a
woman was there. Seeing a respectably-dressed person, a lady as she supposed,
she came forward with civility. How could she serve me? I was seized with
shame: my tongue would not utter the request I had prepared. I dared not offer
her the half-worn gloves, the creased handkerchief: besides, I felt it would be
absurd. I only begged permission to sit down a moment, as I was tired.
Disappointed in the expectation of a customer, she coolly acceded to my
request. She pointed to a seat; I sank into it. I felt sorely urged to weep;
but conscious how unseasonable such a manifestation would be, I restrained it.
Soon I asked her "if there were any dressmaker or plain-work-woman in the
village?"
"Yes; two or
three. Quite as many as there was employment for."
I reflected. I was
driven to the point now. I was brought face to face with Necessity. I stood in
the position of one without a resource, without a friend, without a coin. I
must do something. What? I must apply somewhere. Where?
"Did she know of
any place in the neighbourhood where a servant was wanted?"
"Nay; she couldn’t
say."
"What was the
chief trade in this place? What did most of the people do?"
"Some were farm
labourers; a good deal worked at Mr. Oliver’s needle-factory, and at the
foundry."
"Did Mr. Oliver
employ women?"
"Nay; it was men’s
work."
"And what do the
women do?"
"I knawn’t,"
was the answer. "Some does one thing, and some another. Poor folk mun get
on as they can."
She seemed to be tired
of my questions: and, indeed, what claim had I to importune her? A neighbour or
two came in; my chair was evidently wanted. I took leave.
I passed up the street,
looking as I went at all the houses to the right hand and to the left; but I
could discover no pretext, nor see an inducement to enter any. I rambled round
the hamlet, going sometimes to a little distance and returning again, for an
hour or more. Much exhausted, and suffering greatly now for want of food, I
turned aside into a lane and sat down under the hedge. Ere many minutes had
elapsed, I was again on my feet, however, and again searching something -- a
resource, or at least an informant. A pretty little house stood at the top of
the lane, with a garden before it, exquisitely neat and brilliantly blooming. I
stopped at it. What business had I to approach the white door or touch the
glittering knocker? In what way could it possibly be the interest of the
inhabitants of that dwelling to serve me? Yet I drew near and knocked. A
mild-looking, cleanly-attired young woman opened the door. In such a voice as
might be expected from a hopeless heart and fainting frame -- a voice
wretchedly low and faltering -- I asked if a servant was wanted here?
"No," said
she; "we do not keep a servant."
"Can you tell me
where I could get employment of any kind?" I continued. "I am a
stranger, without acquaintance in this place. I want some work: no matter
what."
But it was not her
business to think for me, or to seek a place for me: besides, in her eyes, how
doubtful must have appeared my character, position, tale. She shook her head,
she "was sorry she could give me no information," and the white door
closed, quite gently and civilly: but it shut me out. If she had held it open a
little longer, I believe I should have begged a piece of bread; for I was now
brought low.
I could not bear to
return to the sordid village, where, besides, no prospect of aid was visible. I
should have longed rather to deviate to a wood I saw not far off, which
appeared in its thick shade to offer inviting shelter; but I was so sick, so
weak, so gnawed with nature’s cravings, instinct kept me roaming round abodes
where there was a chance of food. Solitude would be no solitude -- rest no rest
-- while the vulture, hunger, thus sank beak and talons in my side.
I drew near houses; I
left them, and came back again, and again I wandered away: always repelled by
the consciousness of having no claim to ask -- no right to expect interest in
my isolated lot. Meantime, the afternoon advanced, while I thus wandered about
like a lost and starving dog. In crossing a field, I saw the church spire
before me: I hastened towards it. Near the churchyard, and in the middle of a
garden, stood a well-built though small house, which I had no doubt was the
parsonage. I remembered that strangers who arrive at a place where they have no
friends, and who want employment, sometimes apply to the clergyman for
introduction and aid. It is the clergyman’s function to help -- at least with
advice -- those who wished to help themselves. I seemed to have something like
a right to seek counsel here. Renewing then my courage, and gathering my feeble
remains of strength, I pushed on. I reached the house, and knocked at the
kitchen-door. An old woman opened: I asked was this the parsonage?
"Yes."
"Was the clergyman
in?"
"No."
"Would he be in
soon?"
"No, he was gone
from home."
"To a
distance?"
"Not so far --
happen three mile. He had been called away by the sudden death of his father:
he was at Marsh End now, and would very likely stay there a fortnight
longer."
"Was there any
lady of the house?"
"Nay, there was
naught but her, and she was housekeeper;" and of her, reader, I could not
bear to ask the relief for want of which I was sinking; I could not yet beg;
and again I crawled away.
Once more I took off my
handkerchief -- once more I thought of the cakes of bread in the little shop.
Oh, for but a crust! for but one mouthful to allay the pang of famine!
Instinctively I turned my face again to the village; I found the shop again,
and I went in; and though others were there besides the woman I ventured the
request: "Would she give me a roll for this handkerchief?"
She looked at me with
evident suspicion: "Nay, she never sold stuff i’ that way."
Almost desperate, I
asked for half a cake; she again refused. "How could she tell where I had
got the handkerchief?" she said.
"Would she take my
gloves?"
"No! what could
she do with them?"
Reader, it is not
pleasant to dwell on these details. Some say there is enjoyment in looking back
to painful experience past; but at this day I can scarcely bear to review the
times to which I allude: the moral degradation, blent with the physical
suffering, form too distressing a recollection ever to be willingly dwelt on. I
blamed none of those who repulsed me. I felt it was what was to be expected,
and what could not be helped: an ordinary beggar is frequently an object of
suspicion; a well-dressed beggar inevitably so. To be sure, what I begged was
employment; but whose business was it to provide me with employment? Not,
certainly, that of persons who saw me then for the first time, and who knew
nothing about my character. And as to the woman who would not take my
handkerchief in exchange for her bread, why, she was right, if the offer
appeared to her sinister or the exchange unprofitable. Let me condense now. I
am sick of the subject.
A little before dark I
passed a farmhouse, at the open door of which the farmer was sitting, eating
his supper of bread and cheese. I stopped and said: --
"Will you give me
a piece of bread? for I am very hungry." He cast on me a glance of
surprise; but without answering, he cut a thick slice from his loaf, and gave
it to me. I imagine he did not think I was a beggar, but only an eccentric sort
of lady, who had taken a fancy to his brown loaf. As soon as I was out of sight
of his house, I sat down and ate it.
I could not hope to get
a lodging under a roof, and sought it in the wood I have before alluded to. But
my night was wretched, my rest broken: the ground was damp, the air cold:
besides, intruders passed near me more than once, and I had again and again to
change my quarters: no sense of safety or tranquillity befriended me. Towards
morning it rained; the whole of the following day was wet. Do not ask me,
reader, to give a minute account of that day; as before, I sought work; as
before, I was repulsed; as before, I starved; but once did food pass my lips.
At the door of a cottage I saw a little girl about to throw a mess of cold
porridge into a pig trough. "Will you give me that?" I asked.
She stared at me.
"Mother!" she exclaimed, "there is a woman wants me to give her
these porridge."
"Well, lass,"
replied a voice within, "give it her if she’s a beggar. T’ pig doesn’t
want it."
The girl emptied the
stiffened mould into my hands and I devoured it ravenously.
As the wet twilight
deepened, I stopped in a solitary bridle-path, which I had been pursuing an
hour or more.
"My strength is
quite failing me," I said in a soliloquy. "I feel I cannot go much
farther. Shall I be an outcast again this night? While the rain descends so,
must I lay my head on the cold, drenched ground? I fear I cannot do otherwise:
for who will receive me? But it will be very dreadful, with this feeling of
hunger, faintness, chill, and this sense of desolation -- this total
prostration of hope. In all likelihood, though, I should die before morning.
And why cannot I reconcile myself to the prospect of death? Why do I struggle
to retain a valueless life? Because I know, or believe, Mr. Rochester is
living: and then, to die of want and cold is a fate to which nature cannot
submit passively. Oh, Providence! sustain me a little longer! Aid -- direct
me!"
My glazed eye wandered
over the dim and misty landscape. I saw I had strayed far from the village: it
was quite out of sight. The very cultivation surrounding it had disappeared. I
had, by cross-ways and by-paths, once more drawn near the tract of moorland;
and now, only a few fields, almost as wild and unproductive as the heath from
which they were scarcely reclaimed, lay between me and the dusky hill.
"Well, I would
rather die yonder than in a street or on a frequented road," I reflected.
"And far better that crows and ravens -- if any ravens there be in these
regions -- should pick my flesh from my bones, than that they should be
prisoned in a workhouse coffin and moulder in a pauper’s grave."
To the hill, then, I
turned. I reached it. It remained now only to find a hollow where I could lie
down, and feel at least hidden, if not secure. But all the surface of the waste
looked level. It showed no variation but of tint: green, where rush and moss
overgrew the marshes; black, where the dry soil bore only heath. Dark as it was
getting, I could still see these changes, though but as mere alternations of
light and shade; for colour had faded with the daylight.
My eye still roved over
the sullen swell and along the moor-edge, vanishing amidst the wildest scenery,
when at one dim point, far in among the marshes and the ridges, a light sprang
up. "That is an ignis fatuus," was my first thought; and I expected
it would soon vanish. It burnt on, however, quite steadily, neither receding
nor advancing. "Is it, then, a bonfire just kindled?" I questioned. I
watched to see whether it would spread: but no; as it did not diminish, so it
did not enlarge. "It may be a candle in a house," I then conjectured;
"but if so, I can never reach it. It is much too far away: and were it
within a yard of me, what would it avail? I should but knock at the door to
have it shut in my face."
And I sank down where I
stood, and hid my face against the ground. I lay still a while: the night-wind
swept over the hill and over me, and died moaning in the distance; the rain
fell fast, wetting me afresh to the skin. Could I but have stiffened to the
still frost -- the friendly numbness of death -- it might have pelted on; I
should not have felt it; but my yet living flesh shuddered at its chilling
influence. I rose ere long.
The light was yet
there, shining dim but constant through the rain. I tried to walk again: I
dragged my exhausted limbs slowly towards it. It led me aslant over the hill,
through a wide bog, which would have been impassable in winter, and was splashy
and shaking even now, in the height of summer. Here I fell twice; but as often
I rose and rallied my faculties. This light was my forlorn hope: I must gain
it.
Having crossed the
marsh, I saw a trace of white over the moor. I approached it; it was a road or
a track: it led straight up to the light, which now beamed from a sort of
knoll, amidst a clump of trees -- firs, apparently, from what I could
distinguish of the character of their forms and foliage through the gloom. My
star vanished as I drew near: some obstacle had intervened between me and it. I
put out my hand to feel the dark mass before me: I discriminated the rough
stones of a low wall -- above it, something like palisades, and within, a high
and prickly hedge. I groped on. Again a whitish object gleamed before me: it
was a gate -- a wicket; it moved on its hinges as I touched it. On each side
stood a sable bush -- holly or yew.
Entering the gate and
passing the shrubs, the silhouette of a house rose to view, black, low, and
rather long; but the guiding light shone nowhere. All was obscurity. Were the
inmates retired to rest? I feared it must be so. In seeking the door, I turned
an angle: there shot out the friendly gleam again, from the lozenged panes of a
very small latticed window, within a foot of the ground, made still smaller by
the growth of ivy or some other creeping plant, whose leaves clustered thick
over the portion of the house wall in which it was set. The aperture was so
screened and narrow, that curtain or shutter had been deemed unnecessary; and
when I stooped down and put aside the spray of foliage shooting over it, I
could see all within. I could see clearly a room with a sanded floor, clean
scoured; a dresser of walnut, with pewter plates ranged in rows, reflecting the
redness and radiance of a glowing peat-fire. I could see a clock, a white deal
table, some chairs. The candle, whose ray had been my beacon, burnt on the
table; and by its light an elderly woman, somewhat rough-looking, but
scrupulously clean, like all about her, was knitting a stocking.
I noticed these objects
cursorily only -- in them there was nothing extraordinary. A group of more
interest appeared near the hearth, sitting still amidst the rosy peace and
warmth suffusing it. Two young, graceful women -- ladies in every point -- sat,
one in a low rocking-chair, the other on a lower stool; both wore deep mourning
of crape and bombazeen, which sombre garb singularly set off very fair necks
and faces: a large old pointer dog rested its massive head on the knee of one
girl -- in the lap of the other was cushioned a black cat.
A strange place was
this humble kitchen for such occupants! Who were they? They could not be the
daughters of the elderly person at the table; for she looked like a rustic, and
they were all delicacy and cultivation. I had nowhere seen such faces as
theirs: and yet, as I gazed on them, I seemed intimate with every lineament. I
cannot call them handsome -- they were too pale and grave for the word: as they
each bent over a book, they looked thoughtful almost to severity. A stand
between them supported a second candle and two great volumes, to which they
frequently referred, comparing them, seemingly, with the smaller books they held
in their hands, like people consulting a dictionary to aid them in the task of
translation. This scene was as silent as if all the figures had been shadows
and the firelit apartment a picture: so hushed was it, I could hear the cinders
fall from the grate, the clock tick in its obscure corner; and I even fancied I
could distinguish the click-click of the woman’s knitting-needles. When,
therefore, a voice broke the strange stillness at last, it was audible enough
to me.
"Listen,
Diana," said one of the absorbed students; "Franz and old Daniel are
together in the night-time, and Franz is telling a dream from which he has
awakened in terror -- listen!" And in a low voice she read something, of
which not one word was intelligible to me; for it was in an unknown tongue --
neither French nor Latin. Whether it were Greek or German I could not tell.
"That is
strong," she said, when she had finished: "I relish it." The
other girl, who had lifted her head to listen to her sister, repeated, while
she gazed at the fire, a line of what had been read. At a later day, I knew the
language and the book; therefore, I will here quote the line: though, when I
first heard it, it was only like a stroke on sounding brass to me -- conveying
no meaning: --
"‘Da trat hervor
Einer, anzusehen wie die Sternen Nacht.’ Good! good!" she exclaimed, while
her dark and deep eye sparkled. "There you have a dim and mighty archangel
fitly set before you! The line is worth a hundred pages of fustian. ‘Ich wäge
die Gedanken in der Schale meines Zornes und die Werke mit dem Gewichte meines
Grimms.’ I like it!"
Both were again silent.
"Is there ony
country where they talk i’ that way?" asked the old woman, looking up from
her knitting.
"Yes, Hannah -- a
far larger country than England, where they talk in no other way."
"Well, for sure
case, I knawn’t how they can understand t’ one t’ other: and if either o’ ye
went there, ye could tell what they said, I guess?"
"We could probably
tell something of what they said, but not all -- for we are not as clever as
you think us, Hannah. We don’t speak German, and we cannot read it without a
dictionary to help us."
"And what good
does it do you?"
"We mean to teach
it some time -- or at least the elements, as they say; and then we shall get
more money than we do now."
"Varry like: but
give ower studying; ye’ve done enough for to-night."
"I think we have:
at least I’m tired. Mary, are you?"
"Mortally: after
all, it’s tough work fagging away at a language with no master but a
lexicon."
"It is, especially
such a language as this crabbed but glorious Deutsch. I wonder when St. John
will come home."
"Surely he will
not be long now: it is just ten (looking at a little gold watch she drew from
her girdle). It rains fast, Hannah: will you have the goodness to look at the
fire in the parlour?"
The woman rose: she
opened a door, through which I dimly saw a passage: soon I heard her stir a
fire in an inner room; she presently came back.
"Ah,
childer!" said she, "it fair troubles me to go into yond’ room now:
it looks so lonesome wi’ the chair empty and set back in a corner."
She wiped her eyes with
her apron: the two girls, grave before, looked sad now.
"But he is in a
better place," continued Hannah: "we shouldn’t wish him here again.
And then, nobody need to have a quieter death nor he had."
"You say he never
mentioned us?" inquired one of the ladies.
"He hadn’t time,
bairn: he was gone in a minute -- was your father. He had been a bit ailing
like the day before, but naught to signify; and when Mr. St. John asked if he
would like either o’ ye to be sent for, he fair laughed at him. He began again
with a bit of a heaviness in his head the next day -- that is, a fortnight
sin" -- and he went to sleep and niver wakened: he wor a’most stark when
your brother went into t’ chamber and fand him. Ah, childer! that’s t’ last o’
t’ old stock -- for ye and Mr. St. John is like of different soart to them ’at’s
gone; for all your mother wor mich i’ your way, and a’most as book-learned. She
wor the pictur’ o’ ye, Mary: Diana is more like your father."
I thought them so
similar I could not tell where the old servant (for such I now concluded her to
be) saw the difference. Both were fair complexioned and slenderly made; both
possessed faces full of distinction and intelligence. One, to be sure, had hair
a shade darker than the other, and there was a difference in their style of
wearing it; Mary’s pale brown locks were parted and braided smooth: Diana’s
duskier tresses covered her neck with thick curls. The clock struck ten.
"Ye’ll want your
supper, I am sure," observed Hannah; "and so will Mr. St. John when
he comes in."
And she proceeded to
prepare the meal. The ladies rose; they seemed about to withdraw to the
parlour. Till this moment, I had been so intent on watching them, their
appearance and conversation had excited in me so keen an interest, I had
half-forgotten my own wretched position: now it recurred to me. More desolate,
more desperate than ever, it seemed from contrast. And how impossible did it
appear to touch the inmates of this house with concern on my behalf; to make
them believe in the truth of my wants and woes -- to induce them to vouchsafe a
rest for my wanderings! As I groped out the door, and knocked at it
hesitatingly, I felt that last idea to be a mere chimera. Hannah opened.
"What do you
want?" she inquired, in a voice of surprise, as she surveyed me by the
light of the candle she held.
"May I speak to
your mistresses?" I said.
"You had better
tell me what you have to say to them. Where do you come from?"
"I am a
stranger."
"What is your
business here at this hour?"
"I want a night’s
shelter in an out-house or anywhere, and a morsel of bread to eat."
Distrust, the very
feeling I dreaded, appeared in Hannah’s face. "I’ll give you a piece of
bread," she said, after a pause; "but we can’t take in a vagrant to
lodge. It isn’t likely."
"Do let me speak
to your mistresses."
"No, not I. What
can they do for you? You should not be roving about now; it looks very
ill."
"But where shall I
go if you drive me away? What shall I do?"
"Oh, I’ll warrant
you know where to go and what to do. Mind you don’t do wrong, that’s all. Here
is a penny; now go --"
"A penny cannot
feed me, and I have no strength to go farther. Don’t shut the door: -- oh, don’t,
for God’s sake!"
"I must; the rain
is driving in --"
"Tell the young
ladies. -- Let me see them --"
"Indeed, I will
not. You are not what you ought to be, or you wouldn’t make such a noise. Move
off."
"But I must die if
I am turned away."
"Not you. I’m fear’d
you have some ill plans agate, that bring you about folk’s houses at this time
o’ night. If you’ve any followers -- housebreakers or such like -- anywhere
near, you may tell them we are not by ourselves in the house; we have a
gentleman, and dogs, and guns." Here the honest but inflexible servant
clapped the door to and bolted it within.
This was the climax. A
pang of exquisite suffering -- a throe of true despair -- rent and heaved my
heart. Worn out, indeed, I was; not another step could I stir. I sank on the
wet doorstep: I groaned -- I wrung my hands -- I wept in utter anguish. Oh,
this spectre of death! Oh, this last hour, approaching in such horror! Alas,
this isolation -- this banishment from my kind! Not only the anchor of hope,
but the footing of fortitude was gone -- at least for a moment; but the last I
soon endeavoured to regain.
"I can but
die," I said, "and I believe in God. Let me try to wait His will in
silence."
These words I not only
thought, but uttered; and thrusting back all my misery into my heart, I made an
effort to compel it to remain there -- dumb and still.
"All men must
die," said a voice quite close at hand; "but all are not condemned to
meet a lingering and premature doom, such as yours would be if you perished
here of want."
"Who or what
speaks?" I asked, terrified at the unexpected sound, and incapable now of
deriving from any occurrence a hope of aid. A form was near -- what form, the
pitch-dark night and my enfeebled vision prevented me from distinguishing. With
a loud long knock, the newcomer appealed to the door.
"Is it you, Mr.
St. John?" cried Hannah.
"Yes -- yes; open
quickly."
"Well, how wet and
cold you must be, such a wild night as it is! Come in -- your sisters are quite
uneasy about you, and I believe there are bad folks about. There has been a
beggar-woman -- I declare she is not gone yet! -- laid down there. Get up! for
shame! Move off, I say!"
"Hush, Hannah! I
have a word to say to the woman. You have done your duty in excluding, now let
me do mine in admitting her. I was near, and listened to both you and her. I
think this is a peculiar case -- I must at least examine into it. Young woman,
rise, and pass before me into the house."
With difficulty I
obeyed him. Presently I stood within that clean, bright kitchen -- on the very
hearth -- trembling, sickening; conscious of an aspect in the last degree
ghastly, wild, and weather-beaten. The two ladies, their brother, Mr. St. John,
the old servant, were all gazing at me.
"St. John, who is
it?" I heard one ask.
"I cannot tell: I
found her at the door," was the reply.
"She does look
white," said Hannah.
"As white as clay
or death," was responded. "She will fall: let her sit."
And indeed my head
swam: I dropped, but a chair received me. I still possessed my senses, though
just now I could not speak.
"Perhaps a little
water would restore her. Hannah, fetch some. But she is worn to nothing. How
very thin, and how very bloodless!"
"A mere
spectre!"
"Is she ill, or
only famished?"
"Famished, I
think. Hannah, is that milk? Give it me, and a piece of bread."
Diana (I knew her by
the long curls which I saw drooping between me and the fire as she bent over
me) broke some bread, dipped it in milk, and put it to my lips. Her face was
near mine: I saw there was pity in it, and I felt sympathy in her hurried
breathing. In her simple words, too, the same balm-like emotion spoke:
"Try to eat."
"Yes -- try,"
repeated Mary gently; and Mary’s hand removed my sodden bonnet and lifted my
head. I tasted what they offered me: feebly at first, eagerly soon.
"Not too much at
first -- restrain her," said the brother; "she has had enough."
And he withdrew the cup of milk and the plate of bread.
"A little more,
St. John -- look at the avidity in her eyes."
"No more at
present, sister. Try if she can speak now -- ask her her name."
I felt I could speak,
and I answered -- "My name is Jane Elliott." Anxious as ever to avoid
discovery, I had before resolved to assume an alias.
"And where do you
live? Where are your friends?"
I was silent.
"Can we send for
any one you know?"
I shook my head.
"What account can
you give of yourself?"
Somehow, now that I had
once crossed the threshold of this house, and once was brought face to face
with its owners, I felt no longer outcast, vagrant, and disowned by the wide
world. I dared to put off the mendicant -- to resume my natural manner and character.
I began once more to know myself; and when Mr. St. John demanded an account --
which at present I was far too weak to render -- I said after a brief pause, --
"Sir, I can give
you no details to-night."
"But what,
then," said he, "do you expect me to do for you?"
"Nothing," I
replied. My strength sufficed for but short answers. Diana took the word: --
"Do you
mean," she asked, "that we have now given you what aid you require?
and that we may dismiss you to the moor and the rainy night?"
I looked at her. She
had, I thought, a remarkable countenance, instinct both with power and
goodness. I took sudden courage. Answering her compassionate gaze with a smile,
I said: "I will trust you. If I were a masterless and stray dog, I know
that you would not turn me from your hearth to-night: as it is, I really have
no fear. Do with me and for me as you like; but excuse me from much discourse
-- my breath is short -- I feel a spasm when I speak." All three surveyed
me, and all three were silent.
"Hannah,"
said Mr. St. John, at last, "let her sit there at present, and ask her no
questions; in ten minutes more, give her the remainder of that milk and bread.
Mary and Diana, let us go into the parlour and talk the matter over."
They withdrew. Very
soon one of the ladies returned -- I could not tell which. A kind of pleasant
stupor was stealing over me as I sat by the genial fire. In an undertone she
gave some directions to Hannah. Ere long, with the servant’s aid, I contrived
to mount a staircase; my dripping clothes were removed; soon a warm, dry bed
received me. I thanked God -- experienced amidst unutterable exhaustion a glow
of grateful joy -- and slept.
THE recollection of
about three days and nights succeeding this is very dim in my mind. I can
recall some sensations felt in that interval; but few thoughts framed, and no
actions performed. I knew I was in a small room and in a narrow bed. To that
bed I seemed to have grown; I lay on it motionless as a stone; and to have torn
me from it would have been almost to kill me. I took no note of the lapse of
time -- of the change from morning to noon, from noon to evening. I observed
when any one entered or left the apartment: I could even tell who they were; I
could understand what was said when the speaker stood near to me; but I could
not answer; to open my lips or move my limbs was equally impossible. Hannah,
the servant, was my most frequent visitor. Her coming disturbed me. I had a
feeling that she wished me away: that she did not understand me or my
circumstances; that she was prejudiced against me. Diana and Mary appeared in
the chamber once or twice a day. They would whisper sentences of this sort at
my bed-side: --
"It is very well
we took her in."
"Yes; she would
certainly have been found dead at the door in the morning had she been left out
all night. I wonder what she has gone through?"
"Strange
hardships, I imagine -- poor, emaciated, pallid wanderer?"
"She is not an
uneducated person, I should think, by her manner of speaking; her accent was
quite pure; and the clothes she took off, though splashed and wet, were little
worn and fine."
"She has a
peculiar face; fleshless and haggard as it is, I rather like it; and when in
good health and animated, I can fancy her physiognomy would be agreeable."
Never once in their
dialogues did I hear a syllable of regret at the hospitality they had extended
to me, or of suspicion of, or aversion to, myself. I was comforted.
Mr. St. John came but
once: he looked at me, and said my state of lethargy was the result of reaction
from excessive and protracted fatigue. He pronounced it needless to send for a
doctor: nature, he was sure, would manage best, left to herself. He said every
nerve had been overstrained in some way, and the whole system must sleep torpid
a while. There was no disease. He imagined my recovery would be rapid enough
when once commenced. These opinions he delivered in a few words, in a quiet,
low voice; and added, after a pause, in the tone of a man little accustomed to
expansive comment, "Rather an unusual physiognomy; certainly, not
indicative of vulgarity or degradation."
"Far
otherwise," responded Diana. "To speak truth, St. John, my heart
rather warms to the poor little soul. I wish we may be able to benefit her
permanently."
"That is hardly
likely," was the reply. "You will find she is some young lady who has
had a misunderstanding with her friends, and has probably injudiciously left
them. We may, perhaps, succeed in restoring her to them, if she is not obstinate:
but I trace lines of force in her face which make me sceptical of her
tractability." He stood considering me some minutes; then added, "She
looks sensible, but not at all handsome."
"She is so ill,
St. John."
"Ill or well, she
would always be plain. The grace and harmony of beauty are quite wanting in
those features."
On the third day I was
better; on the fourth, I could speak, move, rise in bed, and turn. Hannah had
brought me some gruel and dry toast, about, as I supposed, the dinner hour. I
had eaten with relish: the food was good -- void of the feverish flavour which
had hitherto poisoned what I had swallowed. When she left me, I felt
comparatively strong and revived: ere long satiety of repose and desire for
action stirred me. I wished to rise; but what could I put on? Only my damp and
bemired apparel; in which I had slept on the ground and fallen in the marsh. I
felt ashamed to appear before my benefactors so clad. I was spared the
humiliation.
On a chair by the
bedside were all my own things, clean and dry. My black silk frock hung against
the wall. The traces of the bog were removed from it; the creases left by the
wet smoothed out: it was quite decent. My very shoes and stockings were
purified and rendered presentable. There were the means of washing in the room,
and a comb and brush to smooth my hair. After a weary process, and resting
every five minutes, I succeeded in dressing myself. My clothes hung loose on
me; for I was much wasted, but I covered deficiencies with a shawl, and once
more, clean and respectable-looking -- no speck of the dirt, no trace of the
disorder I so hated, and which seemed so to degrade me, left -- I crept down a
stone staircase with the aid of the banisters, to a narrow low passage, and
found my way presently to the kitchen.
It was full of the
fragrance of new bread and the warmth of a generous fire. Hannah was baking.
Prejudices, it is well known, are most difficult to eradicate from the heart
whose soil has never been loosened or fertilised by education: they grow there,
firm as weeds among stones. Hannah had been cold and stiff, indeed, at the
first: latterly she had begun to relent a little; and when she saw me come in
tidy and well-dressed, she even smiled.
"What, you have
got up!" she said. "You are better, then. You may sit you down in my
chair on the hearthstone, if you will."
She pointed to the
rocking-chair: I took it. She bustled about, examining me every now and then
with the corner of her eye. Turning to me, as she took some loaves from the
oven, she asked, bluntly --
"Did you ever go
a-begging afore you came here?"
I was indignant for a
moment; but remembering that anger was out of the question, and that I had
indeed appeared as a beggar to her, I answered quietly, but still not without a
certain marked firmness --
"You are mistaken
in supposing me a beggar. I am no beggar; any more than yourself or your young
ladies."
After a pause she said,
"I dunnut understand that: you’ve like no house, nor no brass, I
guess?"
"The want of house
or brass (by which I suppose you mean money) does not make a beggar in your
sense of the word."
"Are you
book-learned?" she inquired presently.
"Yes, very."
"But you’ve never
been to a boarding-school?"
"I was at a
boarding-school eight years."
She opened her eyes
wide. "Whatever cannot ye keep yourself for, then?"
"I have kept
myself; and, I trust, shall keep myself again. What are you going to do with
these gooseberries?" I inquired as she brought out a basket of the fruit.
"Mak’em into
pies."
"Give them to me
and I’ll pick them."
"Nay; I dunnut
want ye to do nought."
"But I must do
something. Let me have them."
She consented; and she
even brought me a clean towel to spread over my dress, "lest," as she
said, "I should mucky it."
"Ye’ve not been
used to sarvant’s wark, I see by your hands," she remarked. "Happen
ye’ve been a dressmaker?"
"No, you are
wrong. And now, never mind what I have been: don’t trouble your head further
about me; but tell me the name of the house where we are."
"Some calls it
Marsh-End, and some calls it Moor-House."
"And the gentleman
who lives here is called Mr. St. John?"
"Nay; he doesn’t
live here: he is only staying a while. When he is at home, he is in his own
parish at Morton."
"That village a
few miles off?"
"Aye."
"And what is
he?"
"He is a
parson."
I remembered the answer
of the old housekeeper at the parsonage, when I had asked to see the clergyman.
"This, then, was his father’s residence?"
"Aye; old Mr.
Rivers lived here, and his father, and grandfather, and gurt (great)
grandfather afore him."
"The name, then,
of that gentleman, is Mr. St. John Rivers?"
"Aye; St. John is
like his kirstened name."
"And his sisters
are called Diana and Mary Rivers?"
"Yes."
"Their father is
dead?"
"Dead three weeks
sin’ of a stroke."
"They have no
mother?"
"The mistress has
been dead this mony a year."
"Have you lived
with the family long?"
"I’ve lived here
thirty year. I nursed them all three"
"That proves you
must have been an honest and faithful servant. I will say so much for you,
though you have had the incivility to call me a beggar."
She again regarded me
with a surprised stare. "I believe," she said, "I was quite
mista’en in my thoughts of you: but there is so mony cheats goes about, you mun
forgie me."
"And though,"
I continued, rather severely, "you wished to turn me from the door, on a
night when you should not have shut out a dog."
"Well, it was
hard: but what can a body do? I thought more o’ th’ childer nor of mysel: poor
things! They’ve like nobody to tak’ care on ’em but me. I’m like to look
sharpish."
I maintained a grave
silence for some minutes.
"You munnut think
too hardly of me," she again remarked.
"But I do think
hardly of you," I said; "and I’ll tell you why -- not so much because
you refused to give me shelter, or regarded me as an impostor, as because you
just now made it a species of reproach that I had no "brass" and no
house. Some of the best people that ever lived have been as destitute as I am;
and if you are a Christian, you ought not to consider poverty a crime."
"No more I
ought," said she: "Mr. St. John tells me so too; and I see I wor
wrang -- but I’ve clear a different notion on you now to what I had. You look a
raight down dacent little crater."
"That will do -- I
forgive you now. Shake hands."
She put her floury and
horny hand into mine; another and heartier smile illumined her rough face, and
from that moment we were friends.
Hannah was evidently
fond of talking. While I picked the fruit, and she made the paste for the pies,
she proceeded to give me sundry details about her deceased master and mistress,
and "the childer," as she called the young people.
Old Mr. Rivers, she
said, was a plain man enough, but a gentleman, and of as ancient a family as
could be found. Marsh-End had belonged to the Rivers ever since it was a house:
and it was, she affirmed, "aboon two hundred year old -- for all it looked
but a small, humble place, naught to compare wi’ Mr. Oliver’s grand hall down i’
Morton Vale. But she could remember Bill Oliver’s father a journeyman needle-maker;
and th’ Rivers wor gentry i’ thi’ owd days o’ th’ Henrys, as onybody might see
by looking into th’ registers i’ Morton Church vestry." Still, she
allowed, "the owd maister was like other folk -- naught mich out o’ t’
common way: stark mad o’ shooting, and farming, and sich like." The
mistress was different. She was a great reader, and studied a deal; and the
"bairns" had taken after her. There was nothing like them in these
parts, nor ever had been; they had liked learning, all three, almost from the
time they could speak; and they had always been "of a mak’ of their
own." Mr. St. John, when he grew up, would go to college and be a parson;
and the girls, as soon as they left school, would seek places as governesses:
for they had told her their father had some years ago lost a great deal of
money by a man he had trusted turning bankrupt; and as he was now not rich
enough to give them fortunes, they must provide for themselves. They had lived
very little at home for a long while, and were only come now to stay a few
weeks on account of their father’s death; but they did so like Marsh-End and
Morton, and all these moors and hills about. They had been in London, and many
other grand towns; but they always said there was no place like home; and then
they were so agreeable with each other -- never fell out nor
"threaped." She did not know where there was such a family for being
united.
Having finished my task
of gooseberry picking, I asked where the two ladies and their brother were now.
"Gone over to
Morton for a walk; but they would be back in half an hour to tea."
They returned within
the time Hannah had allotted them: they entered by the kitchen door. Mr. St.
John, when he saw me, merely bowed and passed through; the two ladies stopped:
Mary, in a few words, kindly and calmly expressed the pleasure she felt in
seeing me well enough to be able to come down; Diana took my hand: she shook
her head at me.
"You should have
waited for my leave to descend," she said. "You still look very pale
-- and so thin! Poor child! -- poor girl!"
Diana had a voice
toned, to my ear, like the cooing of a dove. She possessed eyes whose gaze I
delighted to encounter. Her whole face seemed to me full of charm. Mary’s
countenance was equally intelligent -- her features equally pretty; but her
expression was more reserved, and her manners, though gentle, more distant.
Diana looked and spoke with a certain authority: she had a will, evidently. It
was my nature to feel pleasure in yielding to an authority supported like hers,
and to bend, where my conscience and self-respect permitted, to an active will.
"And what business
have you here?" she continued. "It is not your place. Mary and I sit
in the kitchen sometimes, because at home we like to be free, even to license
-- but you are a visitor, and must go into the parlour."
"I am very well
here."
"Not at all --
with Hannah bustling about and covering you with flour."
"Besides, the fire
is too hot for you," interposed Mary.
"To be sure,"
added her sister. "Come, you must be obedient." And still holding my
hand she made me rise, and led me into the inner room.
"Sit there,"
she said, placing me on the sofa, "while we take our things off and get
the tea ready; it is another privilege we exercise in our little moorland home
-- to prepare our own meals when we are so inclined, or when Hannah is baking,
brewing, washing, or ironing."
She closed the door,
leaving me solus with Mr. St. John, who sat opposite, a book or newspaper in
his hand. I examined first, the parlour, and then its occupant.
The parlour was rather
a small room, very plainly furnished, yet comfortable, because clean and neat.
The old-fashioned chairs were very bright, and the walnut-wood table was like a
looking-glass. A few strange, antique portraits of the men and women of other
days decorated the stained walls; a cupboard with glass doors contained some
books and an ancient set of china. There was no superfluous ornament in the
room -- not one modern piece of furniture, save a brace of workboxes and a lady’s
desk in rosewood, which stood on a side-table: everything -- including the
carpet and curtains -- looked at once well worn and well saved.
Mr. St. John -- sitting
as still as one of the dusty pictures on the walls, keeping his eyes fixed on
the page he perused, and his lips mutely sealed -- was easy enough to examine.
Had he been a statue instead of a man, he could not have been easier. He was
young -- perhaps from twenty-eight to thirty -- tall, slender; his face riveted
the eye; it was like a Greek face, very pure in outline: quite a straight,
classic nose; quite an Athenian mouth and chin. It is seldom, indeed, an
English face comes so near the antique models as did his. He might well be a
little shocked at the irregularity of my lineaments, his own being so
harmonious. His eyes were large and blue, with brown lashes; his high forehead,
colourless as ivory, was partially streaked over by careless locks of fair
hair.
This is a gentle
delineation, is it not, reader? Yet he whom it describes scarcely impressed one
with the idea of a gentle, a yielding, an impressible, or even of a placid
nature. Quiescent as he now sat, there was something about his nostril, his
mouth, his brow, which, to my perceptions, indicated elements within either
restless, or hard, or eager. He did not speak to me one word, nor even direct
to me one glance, till his sisters returned. Diana, as she passed in and out,
in the course of preparing tea, brought me a little cake, baked on the top of
the oven.
"Eat that
now," she said: "you must be hungry. Hannah says you have had nothing
but some gruel since breakfast."
I did not refuse it,
for my appetite was awakened and keen. Mr. Rivers now closed his book,
approached the table, and, as he took a seat, fixed his blue pictorial-looking
eyes full on me. There was an unceremonious directness, a searching, decided
steadfastness in his gaze now, which told that intention and not diffidence,
had hitherto kept it averted from the stranger.
"You are very hungry,"
he said.
"I am, Sir."
It is my way -- it always was my way, by instinct -- ever to meet the brief
with brevity, the direct with plainness.
"It is well for
you that a low fever has forced you to abstain for the last three days: there
would have been danger in yielding to the cravings of your appetite at first.
Now you may eat, though still not immoderately."
"I trust I shall
not eat long at your expense, Sir," was my very clumsily-contrived,
unpolished answer.
"No," he said
coolly: "when you have indicated to us the residence of your friends, we
can write to them, and you may be restored to home."
"That, I must
plainly tell you, is out of my power to do; being absolutely without home and
friends."
The three looked at me,
but not distrustfully; I felt there was no suspicion in their glances: there
was more of curiosity. I speak particularly of the young ladies. St. John’s
eyes, though clear enough in a literal sense, in a figurative one were
difficult to fathom. He seemed to use them rather as instruments to search
other people’s thoughts, than as agents to reveal his own: the which
combination of keenness and reserve was considerably more calculated to
embarrass than to encourage.
"Do you mean to
say," he asked, "that you are completely isolated from every
connection?"
"I do. Not a tie
links me to any living thing: not a claim do I possess to admittance under any
roof in England."
"A most singular
position at your age!"
Here I saw his glance
directed to my hands, which were folded on the table before me. I wondered what
he sought there: his words soon explained the quest.
"You have never
been married? You are a spinster?"
Diana laughed.
"Why, she can’t be above seventeen or eighteen years old, St. John,"
said she.
"I am near nineteen:
but I am not married. No."
I felt a burning glow
mount to my face; for bitter and agitating recollections were awakened by the
allusion to marriage. They all saw the embarrassment and the emotion. Diana and
Mary relieved me by turning their eyes elsewhere than to my crimsoned visage;
but the colder and sterner brother continued to gaze, till the trouble he had
excited forced out tears as well as colour.
"Where did you
last reside?" he now asked.
"You are too
inquisitive, St. John," murmured Mary in a low voice; but he leaned over
the table and required an answer, by a second firm and piercing look.
"The name of the
place where, and of the person with whom I lived, is my secret," I replied
concisely.
"Which, if you
like, you have, in my opinion, a right to keep, both from St. John and every
other questioner," remarked Diana.
"Yet if I know
nothing about you or your history, I cannot help you," he said. "And
you need help, do you not?"
"I need it, and I
seek it so far, Sir, that some true philanthropist will put me in the way of
getting work which I can do, and the remuneration for which will keep me, if
but in the barest necessaries of life."
"I know not
whether I am a true philanthropist; yet I am willing to aid you to the utmost
of my power in a purpose so honest. First, then, tell me what you have been
accustomed to do, and what you can do."
I had now swallowed my
tea. I was mightily refreshed by the beverage; as much so as a giant with wine:
it gave new tone to my unstrung nerves, and enabled me to address this
penetrating young judge steadily.
"Mr. Rivers,"
I said, turning to him, and looking at him, as he looked at me, openly and
without diffidence, "you and your sisters have done me a great service --
the greatest man can do his fellow-being; you have rescued me, by your noble
hospitality, from death. This benefit conferred gives you an unlimited claim on
my gratitude, and a claim, to a certain extent, on my confidence. I will tell
you as much of the history of the wanderer you have harboured, as I can tell
without compromising my own peace of mind -- my own security, moral and
physical, and that of others.
"I am an orphan,
the daughter of a clergyman. My parents died before I could know them. I was
brought up a dependant; educated in a charitable institution. I will even tell
you the name of the establishment, where I passed six years as a pupil, and two
as a teacher -- Lowood Orphan Asylum, ----shire: you will have heard of it, Mr.
Rivers? -- the Rev. Robert Brocklehurst is the treasurer."
"I have heard of
Mr. Brocklehurst, and I have seen the school."
"I left Lowood
nearly a year since to become a private governess. I obtained a good situation,
and was happy. This place I was obliged to leave four days before I came here.
The reason of my departure I cannot and ought not to explain: it would be
useless, dangerous, and would sound incredible. No blame attached to me: I am
as free from culpability as any one of you three. Miserable I am, and must be
for a time; for the catastrophe which drove me from a house I had found a
paradise was of a strange and direful nature. I observed but two points in
planning my departure -- speed, secrecy: to secure these, I had to leave behind
me everything I possessed except a small parcel; which, in my hurry and trouble
of mind, I forgot to take out of the coach that brought me to Whitcross. To
this neighbourhood, then, I came, quite destitute. I slept two nights in the
open air, and wandered about two days without crossing a threshold: but twice
in that space of time did I taste food; and it was when brought by hunger,
exhaustion, and despair almost to the last gasp, that you, Mr. Rivers, forbade
me to perish of want at your door, and took me under the shelter of your roof.
I know all your sisters have done for me since -- for I have not been
insensible during my seeming torpor -- and I owe to their spontaneous, genuine,
genial compassion as large a debt as to your evangelical charity."
"Don’t make her
talk any more now, St. John," said Diana, as I paused; "she is
evidently not yet fit for excitement. Come to the sofa and sit down now, Miss
Elliott."
I gave an involuntary
half-start at hearing the alias: I had forgotten my new name. Mr. Rivers, whom
nothing seemed to escape, noticed it at once.
"You said your
name was Jane Elliott?" he observed.
"I did say so; and
it is the name by which I think it expedient to be called at present, but it is
not my real name, and when I hear it, it sounds strange to me."
"Your real name
you will not give?"
"No: I fear
discovery above all things; and whatever disclosure would lead to it, I
avoid."
"You are quite
right, I am sure," said Diana. "Now do, brother, let her be at peace
a while."
But when St. John had
mused a few moments he recommenced as imperturbably and with as much acumen as
ever.
"You would not
like to be long dependent on our hospitality -- you would wish, I see, to
dispense as soon as may be with my sisters’ compassion, and, above all, with my
charity (I am quite sensible of the distinction drawn, nor do I resent it -- it
is just): you desire to be independent of us?"
"I do: I have
already said so. Show me how to work, or how to seek work: that is all I now
ask; then let me go, if it be but to the meanest cottage; but till then, allow
me to stay here: I dread another essay of the horrors of homeless
destitution."
"Indeed you shall
stay here," said Diana, putting her white hand on my head. "You
shall," repeated Mary, in the tone of undemonstrative sincerity which
seemed natural to her.
"My sisters, you
see, have a pleasure in keeping you," said Mr. St. John, "as they
would have a pleasure in keeping and cherishing a half-frozen bird, some wintry
wind might have driven through their casement. I feel more inclination to put
you in the way of keeping yourself, and shall endeavour to do so; but observe,
my sphere is narrow. I am but the incumbent of a poor country parish: my aid
must be of the humblest sort. And if you are inclined to despise the day of
small things, seek some more efficient succour than such as I can offer."
"She has already
said that she is willing to do anything honest she can do," answered Diana
for me; "and you know, St. John, she has no choice of helpers: she is
forced to put up with such crusty people as you."
"I will be a
dressmaker; I will be a plain-work-woman; I will be a servant, a nurse-girl, if
I can be no better," I answered.
"Right," said
Mr. St. John, quite coolly. "If such is your spirit, I promise to aid you,
in my own time and way."
He now resumed the book
with which he had been occupied before tea. I soon withdrew, for I had talked
as much, and sat up as long, as my present strength would permit.
THE more I knew of the
inmates of Moor-House, the better I liked them. In a few days I had so far
recovered my health that I could sit up all day, and walk out sometimes. I
could join with Diana and Mary in all their occupations; converse with them as
much as they wished, and aid them when and where they would allow me. There was
a reviving pleasure in this intercourse, of a kind now tasted by me for the
first time -- the pleasure arising from perfect congeniality of tastes,
sentiments, and principles.
I liked to read what
they liked to read: what they enjoyed, delighted me; what they approved, I
reverenced. They loved their sequestered home. I, too, in the grey, small,
antique structure, with its low roof, its latticed casements, its mouldering
walls, its avenue of aged firs -- all grown aslant under the stress of mountain
winds; its garden, dark with yew and holly -- and where no flowers but of the
hardiest species would bloom -- found a charm both potent and permanent. They
clung to the purple moors behind and around their dwelling -- to the hollow
vale into which the pebbly bridle-path leading from their gate descended, and
which wound between fern-banks first, and then amongst a few of the wildest
little pasture-fields that ever bordered a wilderness of heath, or gave sustenance
to a flock of grey moorland sheep, with their little mossy-faced lambs: -- they
clung to this scene, I say, with a perfect enthusiasm of attachment. I could
comprehend the feeling, and share both its strength and truth. I saw the
fascination of the locality. I felt the consecration of its loneliness: my eye
feasted on the outline of swell and sweep -- on the wild colouring communicated
to ridge and dell by moss, by heath-bell, by flower-sprinkled turf, by
brilliant bracken, and mellow granite crag. These details were just to me what
they were to them -- so many pure and sweet sources of pleasure. The strong
blast and the soft breeze; the rough and the halcyon day; the hours of sunrise
and sunset; the moonlight and the clouded night, developed for me, in these
regions, the same attraction as for them -- wound round my faculties the same
spell that entranced theirs.
In-doors we agreed
equally well. They were both more accomplished and better read than I was; but
with eagerness I followed in the path of knowledge they had trodden before me.
I devoured the books they lent me: then it was full satisfaction to discuss
with them in the evening what I had perused during the day. Thought fitted
thought; opinion met opinion: we coincided, in short, perfectly.
If in our trio there
was a superior and a leader, it was Diana. Physically, she far excelled me: she
was handsome; she was vigorous. In her animal spirits there was an affluence of
life and certainty of flow, such as excited my wonder, while it baffled my comprehension.
I could talk a while when the evening commenced, but the first gush of vivacity
and fluency gone, I was fain to sit on a stool at Diana’s feet, to rest my head
on her knee, and listen alternately to her and Mary, while they sounded
thoroughly the topic on which I had but touched. Diana offered to teach me
German. I liked to learn of her: I saw the part of instructress pleased and
suited her; that of scholar pleased and suited me no less. Our natures
dovetailed: mutual affection -- of the strongest kind -- was the result. They
discovered I could draw: their pencils and colour-boxes were immediately at my
service. My skill, greater in this one point than theirs, surprised and charmed
them. Mary would sit and watch me by the hour together: then she would take
lessons; and a docile, intelligent, assiduous pupil she made. Thus occupied,
and mutually entertained, days passed like hours, and weeks like days.
As to Mr. St. John, the
intimacy which had arisen so naturally and rapidly between me and his sisters
did not extend to him. One reason of the distance yet observed between us was,
that he was comparatively seldom at home: a large proportion of his time
appeared devoted to visiting the sick and poor among the scattered population
of his parish.
No weather seemed to
hinder him in these pastoral excursions: rain or fair, he would, when his hours
of morning study were over, take his hat, and, followed by his father’s old
pointer, Carlo, go out on his mission of love or duty -- I scarcely know in which
light he regarded it. Sometimes, when the day was very unfavourable, his
sisters would expostulate. He would then say, with a peculiar smile, more
solemn than cheerful, --
"And if I let a
gust of wind or a sprinkling of rain turn me aside from these easy tasks, what
preparation would such sloth be for the future I propose to myself?"
Diana and Mary’s
general answer to this question was a sigh, and some minutes of apparently
mournful meditation.
But besides his
frequent absences, there was another barrier to friendship with him: he seemed
of a reserved, an abstracted, and even of a brooding nature. Zealous in his
ministerial labours, blameless in his life and habits, he yet did not appear to
enjoy that mental serenity, that inward content, which should be the reward of
every sincere Christian and practical philanthropist. Often, of an evening,
when he sat at the window, his desk and papers before him, he would cease
reading or writing, rest his chin on his hand, and deliver himself up to I know
not what course of thought; but that it was perturbed and exciting might be
seen in the frequent flash and changeful dilation of his eye.
I think, moreover, that
Nature was not to him that treasury of delight it was to his sisters. He
expressed once, and but once in my hearing, a strong sense of the rugged charm
of the hills, and an inborn affection for the dark roof and hoary walls he
called his home; but there was more of gloom than pleasure in the tone and
words in which the sentiment was manifested; and never did he seem to roam the
moors for the sake of their soothing silence -- never seek out or dwell upon
the thousand peaceful delights they could yield.
Incommunicative as he
was, some time elapsed before I had an opportunity of gauging his mind. I first
got an idea of its calibre when I heard him preach in his own church at Morton.
I wish I could describe that sermon: but it is past my power. I cannot even
render faithfully the effect it produced on me.
It began calm -- and
indeed, as far as delivery and pitch of voice went, it was calm to the end: an
earnestly felt, yet strictly restrained zeal breathed soon in the distinct
accents, and prompted the nervous language. This grew to force -- compressed,
condensed, controlled. The heart was thrilled, the mind astonished, by the
power of the preacher: neither were softened. Throughout there was a strange
bitterness; an absence of consolatory gentleness; stern allusions to
Calvinistic doctrines -- election, predestination, reprobation -- were
frequent; and each reference to these points sounded like a sentence pronounced
for doom. When he had done, instead of feeling better, calmer, more enlightened
by his discourse, I experienced an expressible sadness; for it seemed to me --
I know not whether equally so to others -- that the eloquence to which I had
been listening had sprung from a depth where lay turbid dregs of disappointment
-- where moved troubling impulses of insatiate yearnings and disquieting
aspirations. I was sure St. John Rivers -- pure-lived, conscientious, zealous
as he was -- had not yet found that peace of God which passeth all
understanding; he had no more found it, I thought, than had I with my concealed
and racking regrets for my broken idol and lost elysium -- regrets to which I
have latterly avoided referring, but which possessed me and tyrannised over me
ruthlessly.
Meantime a month was
gone. Diana and Mary were soon to leave Moor-House, and return to the far
different life and scene which awaited them, as governesses in a large,
fashionable, south-of-England city, where each held a situation in families by
whose wealthy and haughty members they were regarded only as humble dependants,
and who neither knew nor sought one of their innate excellences, and
appreciated only their acquired accomplishments as they appreciated the skill
of their cook or the taste of their waiting-woman. Mr. St. John had said
nothing to me yet about the employment he had promised to obtain for me; yet it
became urgent that I should have a vocation of some kind. One morning, being
left alone with him a few minutes in the parlour, I ventured to approach the
window-recess -- which his table, chair, and desk consecrated as a kind of
study -- and I was going to speak, though not very well knowing in what words
to frame my inquiry -- for it is at all times difficult to break the ice of
reserve glassing over such natures as his -- when he saved me the trouble by
being the first to commence a dialogue.
Looking up as I drew
near -- "You have a question to ask of me?" he said.
"Yes; I wish to
know whether you have heard of any service I can offer myself to
undertake?"
"I found or
devised something for you three weeks ago; but as you seemed both useful and
happy here -- as my sisters had evidently become attached to you, and your
society gave them unusual pleasure -- I deemed it inexpedient to break in on
your mutual comfort till their approaching departure from Marsh-End should
render yours necessary."
"And they will go
in three days now?" I said.
"Yes; and when
they go, I shall return to the parsonage at Morton: Hannah will accompany me;
and this old house will be shut up."
I waited a few moments,
expecting he would go on with the subject first broached: but he seemed to have
entered another train of reflection: his look denoted abstraction from me and
my business. I was obliged to recall him to a theme which was of necessity one
of close and anxious interest to me.
"What is the
employment you had in view, Mr. Rivers? I hope this delay will not have
increased the difficulty of securing it."
"Oh, no; since it
is an employment which depends only on me to give, and you to accept."
He again paused: there
seemed a reluctance to continue. I grew impatient: a restless movement or two,
and an eager and exacting glance fastened on his face, conveyed the feeling to
him as effectually as words could have done, and with less trouble.
"You need be in no
hurry to hear," he said: "let me frankly tell you, I have nothing
eligible or profitable to suggest. Before I explain, recall, if you please, my
notice, clearly given, that if I helped you, it must be as the blind man would
help the lame. I am poor; for I find that, when I have paid my father’s debts,
all the patrimony remaining to me will be this crumbling grange, the row of scathed
firs behind, and the patch of moorish soil, with the yew-trees and holly-bushes
in front. I am obscure: Rivers is an old name; but of the three sole
descendants of the race, two earn the dependant’s crust among strangers, and
the third considers himself an alien from his native country -- not only for
life, but in death. Yes, and deems, and is bound to deem, himself honoured by
the lot, and aspires but after the day when the cross of separation from
fleshly ties shall be laid on his shoulders, and when the Head of that
church-militant of whose humblest members he is one, shall give the word, ‘Rise,
follow me!’"
St. John said these
words as he pronounced his sermons, with a quiet, deep voice; with an unflushed
cheek, and a coruscating radiance of glance. He resumed: --
"And since I am
myself poor and obscure, I can offer you but a service of poverty and
obscurity. You may even think it degrading -- for I see now your habits have
been what the world calls refined: your tastes lean to the ideal, and your
society has at least been amongst the educated -- but I consider that no
service degrades which can better our race. I hold that the more arid and
unreclaimed the soil where the Christian labourer’s task of tillage is
appointed him -- the scantier the meed his toil brings -- the higher the
honour. His, under such circumstances, is the destiny of the pioneer; and the
first pioneers of the Gospel were the Apostles -- their captain was Jesus, the
Redeemer, Himself."
"Well?" I
said, as he again paused -- "proceed."
He looked at me before
he proceeded: indeed, he seemed leisurely to read my face, as if its features
and lines were characters on a page. The conclusions drawn from this scrutiny
he partially expressed in his succeeding observations.
"I believe you
will accept the post I offer you," said he, "and hold it for a while:
not permanently, though: any more than I could permanently keep the narrow and
narrowing -- the tranquil, hidden office of English country incumbent; for in
your nature is an alloy as detrimental to repose as that in mine, though of a
different kind."
"Do explain,"
I urged, when he halted once more.
"I will; and you
shall hear how poor the proposal is, -- how trivial -- how cramping. I shall
not stay long at Morton, now that my father is dead, and that I am my own
master. I shall leave the place probably in the course of a twelvemonth; but
while I do stay, I will exert myself to the utmost for its improvement. Morton,
when I came to it two years ago, had no school: the children of the poor were
excluded from every hope of progress. I established one for boys: I mean now to
open a second school for girls. I have hired a building for the purpose, with a
cottage of two rooms attached to it for the mistress’s house. Her salary will
be thirty pounds a year: her house is already furnished, very simply, but
sufficiently, by the kindness of a lady, Miss Oliver; the only daughter of the
sole rich man in my parish -- Mr. Oliver, the proprietor of a needle-factory
and iron-foundry in the valley. The same lady pays for the education and
clothing of an orphan from the workhouse, on condition that she shall aid the
mistress in such menial offices connected with her own house and the school as
her occupation of teaching will prevent her having time to discharge in person.
Will you be this mistress?"
He put the question
rather hurriedly; he seemed half to expect an indignant, or at least a
disdainful rejection of the offer: not knowing all my thoughts and feelings,
though guessing some, he could not tell in what light the lot would appear to
me. In truth it was humble -- but then it was sheltered, and I wanted a safe
asylum: it was plodding -- but then, compared with that of a governess in a
rich house, it was independent; and the fear of servitude with strangers
entered my soul like iron: it was not ignoble -- not unworthy -- not mentally
degrading. I made my decision.
"I thank you for
the proposal, Mr. Rivers, and I accept it with all my heart."
"But you
comprehend me?" he said. "It is a village-school: your scholars will
be only poor girls -- cottagers’ children -- at the best, farmers’ daughters.
Knitting, sewing, reading, writing, ciphering, will be all you will have to
teach. What will you do with your accomplishments? What, with the largest
portion of your mind -- sentiments -- tastes?"
"Save them till
they are wanted. They will keep."
"You know what you
undertake, then?"
"I do."
He now smiled: and not
a bitter or a sad smile, but one well pleased and deeply gratified.
"And when will you
commence the exercise of your function?"
"I will go to my
house to-morrow, and open the school, if you like, next week."
"Very well: so be
it."
He rose and walked
through the room. Standing still, he again looked at me. He shook his head.
"What do you
disapprove of, Mr. Rivers?" I asked.
"You will not stay
at Morton long: no, no!"
"Why? What is your
reason for saying so?"
"I read it in your
eye; it is not of that description which promises the maintenance of an even
tenor in life."
"I am not
ambitious."
He started at the word
"ambitious." He repeated, "No. What made you think of ambition?
Who is ambitious? I know I am: but how did you find it out?"
"I was speaking of
myself."
"Well, if you are
not ambitious, you are --" He paused.
"What?"
"I was going to
say, impassioned: but perhaps you would have misunderstood the word, and been
displeased. I mean, that human affections and sympathies have a most powerful
hold on you. I am sure you cannot long be content to pass your leisure in
solitude, and to devote your working hours to a monotonous labour wholly void
of stimulus: any more than I can be content," he added, with emphasis,
"to live here buried in morass, pent in with mountain -- my nature, that
God gave me, contravened; my faculties, heaven-bestowed, paralyzed -- made
useless. You hear now how I contradict myself. I, who preached contentment with
a humble lot, and justified the vocation even of hewers of wood and drawers of
water in God’s service -- I, his ordained minister, almost rave in my
restlessness. Well, propensities and principles must be reconciled by some
means."
He left the room. In
this brief hour I had learnt more of him than in the whole previous month: yet
still he puzzled me.
Diana and Mary Rivers
became more sad and silent as the day approached for leaving their brother and
their home. They both tried to appear as usual; but the sorrow they had to
struggle against was one that could not be entirely conquered or concealed.
Diana intimated that this would be a different parting from any they had ever
yet known. It would probably, as far as St. John was concerned, be a parting
for years: it might be a parting for life.
"He will sacrifice
all to his long-framed resolves," she said: "natural affection and
feelings more potent still. St. John looks quiet, Jane; but he hides a fever in
his vitals. You would think him gentle, yet in some things he is inexorable as
death; and the worst of it is, my conscience will hardly permit me to dissuade
him from his severe decision: certainly, I cannot for a moment blame him for
it. It is right, noble, Christian: yet it breaks my heart!" And the tears
gushed to her fine eyes. Mary bent her head low over her work.
"We are now
without father: we shall soon be without home and brother," she murmured.
At that moment a little
accident supervened, which seemed decreed by fate purposely to prove the truth
of the adage, that "misfortunes never come singly," and to add to
their distresses the vexing one of the slip between the cup and the lip. St.
John passed the window reading a letter. He entered.
"Our uncle John is
dead," said he.
Both the sisters seemed
struck: not shocked or appalled; the tidings appeared in their eyes rather
momentous than afflicting.
"Dead?" repeated
Diana.
"Yes."
She riveted a searching
gaze on her brother’s face. "And what then?" she demanded, in a low
voice.
"What then,
Die?" he replied, maintaining a marble immobility of feature. "What
then? Why -- nothing. Read."
He threw the letter
into her lap. She glanced over it, and handed it to Mary. Mary perused it in
silence, and returned it to her brother. All three looked at each other, and
all three smiled -- a dreary, pensive smile enough.
"Amen! We can yet
live," said Diana at last.
"At any rate, it
makes us no worse off than we were before," remarked Mary.
"Only it forces
rather strongly on the mind the picture of what might have been," said Mr.
Rivers, "and contrasts it somewhat too vividly with what is."
He folded the letter,
locked it in his desk, and again went out.
For some minutes no one
spoke. Diana then turned to me.
"Jane, you will
wonder at us and our mysteries," she said, "and think us hard-hearted
beings not to be more moved at the death of so near a relation as an uncle; but
we have never seen him or known him. He was my mother’s brother. My father and
he quarrelled long ago. It was by his advice that my father risked most of his
property in the speculation that ruined him. Mutual recrimination passed
between them: they parted in anger, and were never reconciled. My uncle engaged
afterwards in more prosperous undertakings: it appears he realised a fortune of
twenty thousand pounds. He was never married, and had no near kindred but
ourselves and one other person, not more closely related than we. My father
always cherished the idea that he would atone for his error by leaving his
possessions to us; that letter informs us that he has bequeathed every penny to
the other relation, with the exception of thirty guineas, to be divided between
St. John, Diana, and Mary Rivers, for the purchase of three mourning rings. He
had a right, of course, to do as he pleased: and yet a momentary damp is cast
on the spirits by the receipt of such news. Mary and I would have esteemed ourselves
rich with a thousand pounds each; and to St. John such a sum would have been
valuable, for the good it would have enabled him to do."
This explanation given,
the subject was dropped, and no further reference made to it by either Mr.
Rivers or his sisters. The next day I left Marsh-End for Morton. The day after,
Diana and Mary quitted it for distant B----. In a week, Mr. Rivers and Hannah
repaired to the parsonage: and so the old grange was abandoned.
MY home, then, -- when
I at last find a home, -- is a cottage; a little room with whitewashed walls
and a sanded floor, containing four painted chairs and a table, a clock, a
cupboard, with two or three plates and dishes, and a set of tea-things in delf.
Above, a chamber of the same dimensions as the kitchen, with a deal bedstead
and chest of drawers; small, yet too large to be filled with my scanty
wardrobe: though the kindness of my gentle and generous friends has increased
that, by a modest stock of such things as are necessary.
It is evening. I have
dismissed, with the fee of an orange, the little orphan who serves me as a
handmaid. I am sitting alone on the hearth. This morning, the village school
opened. I had twenty scholars. But three of the number can read: none write or
cipher. Several knit, and a few sew a little. They speak with the broadest
accent of the district. At present, they and I have a difficulty in
understanding each other’s language. Some of them are unmannered, rough,
intractable, as well as ignorant; but others are docile, have a wish to learn,
and evince a disposition that pleases me. I must not forget that these
coarsely-clad little peasants are of flesh and blood as good as the scions of
gentlest genealogy; and that the germs of native excellence, refinement, intelligence,
kind feeling, are as likely to exist in their hearts as in those of the
best-born. My duty will be to develop these germs: surely I shall find some
happiness in discharging that office. Much enjoyment I do not expect in the
life opening before me: yet it will, doubtless, if I regulate my mind, and
exert my powers as I ought, yield me enough to live on from day to day.
Was I very gleeful,
settled, content, during the hours I passed in yonder bare, humble schoolroom
this morning and afternoon? Not to deceive myself, I must reply -- No: I felt
desolate to a degree. I felt -- yes, idiot that I am -- I felt degraded. I
doubted I had taken a step which sank instead of raising me in the scale of
social existence. I was weakly dismayed at the ignorance, the poverty, the
coarseness of all I heard and saw round me. But let me not hate and despise
myself too much for these feelings; I know them to be wrong -- that is a great
step gained; I shall strive to overcome them. To-morrow, I trust, I shall get
the better of them partially; and in a few weeks, perhaps, they will be quite
subdued. In a few months, it is possible, the happiness of seeing progress, and
a change for the better in my scholars may substitute gratification for
disgust.
Meantime, let me ask
myself one question -- Which is better? -- To have surrendered to temptation;
listened to passion; made no painful effort -- no struggle: -- but to have sunk
down in the silken snare; fallen asleep on the flowers covering it; wakened in
a southern clime, amongst the luxuries of a pleasure villa: to have been now
living in France, Mr. Rochester’s mistress; delirious with his love half my
time -- for he would -- oh, yes, he would have loved me well for a while. He
did love me -- no one will ever love me so again. I shall never more know the
sweet homage given to beauty, youth, and grace -- for never to any one else
shall I seem to possess these charms. He was fond and proud of me -- it is what
no man besides will ever be. -- But where am I wandering, and what am I saying,
and above all, feeling? Whether is it better, I ask, to be a slave in a fool’s
paradise at Marseilles -- fevered with delusive bliss one hour -- suffocating
with the bitterest tears of remorse and shame the next -- or to be a
village-schoolmistress, free and honest, in a breezy mountain nook in the
healthy heart of England?
Yes; I feel now that I
was right when I adhered to principle and law, and scorned and crushed the
insane promptings of a frenzied moment. God directed me to a correct choice: I
thank His providence for the guidance!
Having brought my
eventide musings to this point, I rose, went to my door, and looked at the
sunset of the harvest-day, and at the quiet fields before my cottage, which,
with the school, was distant half a mile from the village. The birds were
singing their last strains --
"The air was mild,
the dew was balm."
While I looked, I
thought myself happy, and was surprised to find myself ere long weeping -- and
why? For the doom which had reft me from adhesion to my master: for him I was
no more to see; for the desperate grief and fatal fury -- consequences of my
departure -- which might now, perhaps, be dragging him from the path of right,
too far to leave hope of ultimate restoration thither. At this thought, I
turned my face aside from the lovely sky of eve and lonely vale of Morton -- I
say lonely, for in that bend of it visible to me there was no building apparent
save the church and the parsonage, half-hid in trees, and, quite at the
extremity, the roof of Vale-Hall, where the rich Mr. Oliver and his daughter
lived. I hid my eyes, and leant my head against the stone frame of my door; but
soon a slight noise near the wicket which shut in my tiny garden from the
meadow beyond it made me look up. A dog -- old Carlo, Mr. Rivers’ pointer, as I
saw in a moment -- was pushing the gate with his nose, and St. John himself
leant upon it with folded arms; his brow knit, his gaze, grave almost to
displeasure, fixed on me. I asked him to come in.
"No, I cannot
stay; I have only brought you a little parcel My sisters left for you. I think
it contains a colour-box, pencils, and paper."
I approached to take
it: a welcome gift it was. He examined my face, I thought, with austerity, as I
came near: the traces of tears were doubtless very visible upon it.
"Have you found
your first day’s work harder than you expected?" he asked.
"Oh, no! On the
contrary, I think in time I shall get on with my scholars very well."
"But perhaps your
accommodations -- your cottage -- your furniture -- have disappointed your
expectations? They are, in truth, scanty enough; but" -- I interrupted: --
"My cottage is
clean and weather-proof; my furniture sufficient and commodious. All I see has
made me thankful, not despondent. I am not absolutely such a fool and
sensualist as to regret the absence of a carpet, a sofa, and silver plate;
besides, five weeks ago I had nothing -- I was an outcast, a beggar, a vagrant;
now I have acquaintance, a home, a business. I wonder at the goodness of God; the
generosity of my friends; the bounty of my lot. I do not repine."
"But you feel
solitude an oppression? The little house there behind you is dark and
empty."
"I have hardly had
time yet to enjoy a sense of tranquillity, much less to grow impatient under
one of loneliness."
"Very well; I hope
you feel the content you express: at any rate, your good sense will tell you
that it is too soon yet to yield to the vacillating fears of Lot’s wife. What
you had left before I saw you, of course I do not know; but I counsel you to
resist firmly every temptation which would incline you to look back: pursue
your present career steadily, for some months at least."
"It is what I mean
to do," I answered. St. John continued: --
"It is hard work
to control the workings of inclination and turn the bent of nature; but that it
may be done, I know from experience. God has given us, in a measure, the power
to make our own fate; and when our energies seem to demand a sustenance they
cannot get -- when our will strains after a path we may not follow -- we need
neither starve from inanition, nor stand still in despair: we have but to seek
another nourishment for the mind, as strong as the forbidden food it longed to
taste -- and perhaps purer; and to hew out for the adventurous foot a road as
direct and broad as the one Fortune has blocked up against us, if rougher than
it.
"A year ago I was
myself intensely miserable, because I thought I had made a mistake in entering
the ministry: its uniform duties wearied me to death. I burnt for the more
active life of the world -- for the more exciting toils of a literary career --
for the destiny of an artist, author, orator; anything rather than that of a
priest: yes, the heart of a politician, of a soldier, of a votary of glory, a
lover of renown, a luster after power, beat under my curate’s surplice. I
considered; my life was so wretched, it must be changed, or I must die. After a
season of darkness and struggling, light broke and relief fell: my cramped
existence all at once spread out to a plain without bounds -- my powers heard a
call from heaven to rise, gather their full strength, spread their wings, and
mount beyond ken. God had an errand for me; to bear which afar, to deliver it
well, skill and strength, courage and eloquence, the best qualifications of
soldier, statesman, and orator, were all needed: for these all centre in the
good missionary.
"A missionary I
resolved to be. From that moment my state of mind changed; the fetters
dissolved and dropped from every faculty, leaving nothing of bondage but its
galling soreness -- which time only can heal. My father, indeed, opposed the
determination, but since his death, I have not a legitimate obstacle to contend
with; some affairs settled, a successor for Morton provided, an entanglement or
two of the feelings broken through or cut asunder -- a last conflict with human
weakness, in which I know I shall overcome, because I have vowed that I will
overcome -- and I leave Europe for the East."
He said this, in his
peculiar, subdued, yet emphatic voice; looking, when he had ceased speaking,
not at me, but at the setting sun, at which I looked too. Both he and I had our
backs towards the path leading up the field to the wicket. We had heard no step
on the grass-grown track; the water running in the vale was the one lulling
sound of the hour and scene; we might well then start when a gay voice, sweet
as a silver bell, exclaimed: --
"Good evening, Mr.
Rivers. And good evening, old Carlo. Your dog is quicker to recognise his
friends than you are, Sir; he pricked his ears and wagged his tail when I was
at the bottom of the field, and you have your back towards me now."
It was true. Though Mr.
Rivers had started at the first of those musical accents, as if a thunderbolt
had split a cloud over his head, he stood yet, at the close of the sentence, in
the same attitude in which the speaker had surprised him -- his arm resting on
the gate, his face directed towards the west. He turned at last, with measured
deliberation. A vision, as it seemed to me, had risen at his side. There
appeared, within three feet of him, a form clad in pure white -- a youthful,
graceful form: full, yet fine in contour; and when, after bending to caress
Carlo, it lifted up its head, and threw back a long veil, there bloomed under
his glance a face of perfect beauty. Perfect beauty is a strong expression; but
I do not retrace or qualify it: as sweet features as ever the temperate clime
of Albion moulded; as pure hues of rose and lily as ever her humid gales and
vapoury skies generated and screened, justified, in this instance, the term. No
charm was wanting, no defect was perceptible; the young girl had regular and
delicate lineaments; eyes shaped and coloured as we see them in lovely
pictures, large, and dark, and full; the long and shadowy eyelash which
encircles a fine eye with so soft a fascination; the pencilled brow which gives
such clearness; the white smooth forehead, which adds such repose to the
livelier beauties of tint and ray; the cheek oval, fresh, and smooth; the lips,
fresh too, ruddy, healthy, sweetly formed; the even and gleaming teeth without
flaw; the small dimpled chin; the ornament of rich, plenteous tresses- all
advantages, in short, which, combined, realise the ideal of beauty, were fully
hers. I wondered, as I looked at this fair creature: I admired her with my
whole heart. Nature had surely formed her in a partial mood; and, forgetting
her usual stinted step-mother dole of gifts, had endowed this, her darling,
with a grand-dame’s bounty.
What did St. John
Rivers think of this earthly angel? I naturally asked myself that question as I
saw him turn to her and look at her; and, as naturally, I sought the answer to
the inquiry in his countenance. He had already withdrawn his eye from the Peri,
and was looking at a humble tuft of daisies which grew by the wicket.
"A lovely evening,
but late for you to be out alone," he said, as he crushed the snowy heads
of the closed flowers with his foot.
"Oh, I only came
home from S----" (she mentioned the name of a large town some twenty miles
distant) "this afternoon. Papa told me you had opened your school, and that
the new mistress was come; and so I put on my bonnet after tea, and ran up the
valley to see her: this is she?" pointing to me.
"It is," said
St. John.
"Do you think you
shall like Morton?" she asked of me, with a direct and naive simplicity of
tone and manner, pleasing, if child-like.
"I hope I shall. I
have many inducements to do so."
"Did you find your
scholars as attentive as you expected?"
"Quite."
"Do you like your
house?"
"Very much."
"Have I furnished
it nicely?"
"Very nicely,
indeed."
"And made a good
choice of an attendant for you in Alice Wood?"
"You have indeed.
She is teachable and handy." (This then, I thought, is Miss Oliver, the
heiress; favoured, it seems, in the gifts of fortune, as well as in those of
nature! What happy combination of the planets presided over her birth, I
wonder?)
"I shall come up
and help you to teach sometimes," she added. "It will be a change for
me to visit you now and then; and I like a change. Mr. Rivers, I have been so
gay during my stay at S----. Last night, or rather this morning, I was dancing
till two o’clock. The ----th regiment are stationed there since the riots; and
the officers are the most agreeable men in the world: they put all our young
knife-grinders and scissor merchants to shame."
It seemed to me that
Mr. St. John’s under lip protruded, and his upper lip curled a moment. His
mouth certainly looked a good deal compressed, and the lower part of his face
unusually stern and square, as the laughing girl gave him this information. He
lifted his gaze, too, from the daisies, and turned it on her. An unsmiling, a
searching, a meaning gaze it was. She answered it with a second laugh, and
laughter well became her youth, her roses, her dimples, her bright eyes.
As he stood, mute and
grave, she again fell to caressing Carlo. "Poor Carlo loves me," said
she. "He is not stern and distant to his friends; and if he could speak,
he would not be silent."
As she patted the dog’s
head, bending with native grace before his young and austere master, I saw a
glow rise to that master’s face. I saw his solemn eye melt with sudden fire,
and flicker with resistless emotion. Flushed and kindled thus, he looked nearly
as beautiful for a man as she for a woman. His chest heaved once, as if his
large heart, weary of despotic constriction, had expanded, despite the will,
and made a vigorous bound for the attainment of liberty. But he curbed it, I
think, as a resolute rider would curb a rearing steed. He responded neither by
word nor movement to the gentle advances made him.
"Papa says you
never come to see us now," continued Mis Oliver, looking up. "You are
quite a stranger at Vale-Hall. He is alone this evening, and not very well:
will you return with me and visit him?"
"It is not a
seasonable hour to intrude on Mr. Oliver," answered St. John.
"Not a seasonable
hour! But I declare it is. It is just the hour when papa most wants company:
when the works are closed and he has no business to occupy him. Now, Mr.
Rivers, do come. Why are you so very shy, and so very sombre?" She filled
up the hiatus his silence left by a reply of her own.
"I forgot!"
she exclaimed, shaking her beautiful curled head, as if shocked at herself.
"I am so giddy and thoughtless! Do excuse me. It had slipped my memory
that you have good reasons to be indisposed for joining in my chatter. Diana
and Mary have left you, and Moor-House is shut up, and you are so lonely. I am
sure I pity you. Do come and see papa."
"Not to-night,
Miss Rosamond, not to-night."
Mr. St. John spoke
almost like an automaton: himself only knew the effort it cost him thus to
refuse.
"Well, if you are
so obstinate, I will leave you; for I dare not stay any longer: the dew begins
to fall. Good evening!"
She held out her hand.
He just touched it. "Good evening!" he repeated, in a voice low and
hollow as an echo. She turned, but in a moment returned.
"Are you
well?" she asked. Well might she put the question: his face was blanched
as her gown.
"Quite well,"
he enunciated; and, with a bow, he left the gate. She went one way; he another.
She turned twice to gaze after him as she tripped fairy-like down the field;
he, as he strode firmly across, never turned at all.
This spectacle of
another’s suffering and sacrifice rapt my thoughts from exclusive meditation on
my own. Diana Rivers had designated her brother "inexorable as
death." She had not exaggerated.
I CONTINUED the labours
of the village-school as actively and faithfully as I could. It was truly hard
work at first. Some time elapsed before, with all my efforts, I could
comprehend my scholars and their nature. Wholly untaught, with faculties quite
torpid, they seemed to me hopelessly dull; and, at first sight, all dull alike:
but I soon found I was mistaken. There was a difference amongst them as amongst
the educated; and when I got to know them, and they me, this difference rapidly
developed itself. Their amazement at me, my language, my rules, and ways, once
subsided, I found some of these heavy-looking, gaping rustics wake up into
sharp-witted girls enough. Many showed themselves obliging, and amiable too;
and I discovered amongst them not a few examples of natural politeness, and
innate self-respect, as well as of excellent capacity, that won both my
good-will and my admiration. These soon took a pleasure in doing their work
well, in keeping their persons neat, in learning their tasks regularly, in
acquiring quiet and orderly manners. The rapidity of their progress, in some
instances, was even surprising; and an honest and happy pride I took in it:
besides, I began personally to like some of the best girls; and they liked me.
I had amongst my scholars several farmers’ daughters: young women grown,
almost. These could already read, write, and sew; and to them I taught the
elements of grammar, geography, history, and the finer kinds of needlework. I
found estimable characters amongst them -- characters desirous of information,
and disposed for improvement -- with whom I passed many a pleasant evening hour
in their own homes. Their parents then (the farmer and his wife) loaded me with
attentions. There was an enjoyment in accepting their simple kindness, and in
repaying it by a consideration -- a scrupulous regard to their feelings -- to which
they were not, perhaps, at all times accustomed, and which both charmed and
benefited them; because, while it elevated them in their own eyes, it made them
emulous to merit the deferential treatment they received.
I felt I became a
favourite in the neighbourhood. Whenever I went out, I heard on all sides
cordial salutations, and was welcomed with friendly smiles. To live amidst
general regard, though it be but the regard of working people, is like
"sitting in sunshine, calm and sweet"; serene inward feelings bud and
bloom under the ray. At this period of my life, my heart far oftener swelled
with thankfulness than sank with dejection: and yet, reader, to tell you all,
in the midst of this calm, this useful existence -- after a day passed in
honourable exertion amongst my scholars, an evening spent in drawing or reading
contentedly alone -- I used to rush into strange dreams at night: dreams
many-coloured, agitated, full of the ideal, the stirring, the stormy -- dreams
where, amidst unusual scenes, charged with adventure, with agitating risk and
romantic chance, I still again and again met Mr. Rochester, always at some
exciting crisis; and then the sense of being in his arms, hearing his voice,
meeting his eye, touching his hand and cheek, loving him, being loved by him --
the hope of passing a lifetime at his side, would be renewed, with all its
first force and fire. Then I awoke. Then I recalled where I was, and how
situated. Then I rose up on my curtainless bed, trembling and quivering; and
then the still, dark night witnessed the convulsion of despair, and heard the
burst of passion. By nine o’clock the next morning I was punctually opening the
school; tranquil, settled, prepared for the steady duties of the day.
Rosamond Oliver kept
her word in coming to visit me. Her call at the school was generally made in
the course of her morning ride. She would canter up to the door on her pony,
followed by a mounted livery servant. Anything more exquisite than her
appearance, in her purple habit, with her Amazon’s cap of black velvet placed
gracefully above the long curls that kissed her cheek and floated to her
shoulders, can scarcely be imagined: and it was thus she would enter the rustic
building, and glide through the dazzled ranks of the village children. She
generally came at the hour when Mr. Rivers was engaged in giving his daily
catechising lesson. Keenly, I fear, did the eye of the visitress pierce the
young pastor’s heart. A sort of instinct seemed to warn him of her entrance,
even when he did not see it; and when he was looking quite away from the door,
if she appeared at it, his cheek would glow, and his marble-seeming features,
though they refused to relax, changed indescribably, and in their very
quiescence became expressive of a repressed fervour, stronger than working
muscle or darting glance could indicate.
Of course, she knew her
power: indeed, he did not, because he could not, conceal it from her. In spite
of his Christian stoicism, when she went up and addressed him, and smiled
gaily, encouragingly, even fondly in his face, his hand would tremble and his
eye burn. He seemed to say, with his sad and resolute look, if he did not say
it with his lips, "I love you, and I know you prefer me. It is not despair
of success that keeps me dumb. If I offered my heart, I believe you would
accept it. But that heart is already laid on a sacred altar: the fire is
arranged round it. It will soon be no more than a sacrifice consumed."
And then she would pout
like a disappointed child; a pensive cloud would soften her radiant vivacity;
she would withdraw her hand hastily from his, and turn in transient petulance
from his aspect, at once so heroic and so martyr-like. St. John, no doubt,
would have given the world to follow, recall, retain her, when she thus left him;
but he would not give one chance of heaven, nor relinquish, for the elysium of
her love, one hope of the true, eternal Paradise. Besides, he could not bind
all that he had in his nature -- the rover, the aspirant, the poet, the priest
-- in the limits of a single passion. He could not -- he would not -- renounce
his wild field of mission warfare for the parlours and the peace of Vale-Hall.
I learnt so much from himself in an inroad I once, despite his reserve, had the
daring to make on his confidence.
Miss Oliver already
honoured me with frequent visits to my cottage. I had learnt her whole
character, which was without mystery or disguise: she was coquettish, but not
heartless; exacting, but not worthlessly selfish. She had been indulged from
her birth, but was not absolutely spoilt. She was hasty, but good-humoured;
vain (she could not help it, when every glance in the glass showed her such a
flush of loveliness), but not affected; liberal-handed; innocent of the pride
of wealth; ingenuous; sufficiently intelligent; gay, lively, and unthinking:
she was very charming, in short, even to a cool observer of her own sex like
me; but she was not profoundly interesting or thoroughly impressive. A very
different sort of mind was hers from that, for instance, of the sisters of St.
John. Still, I liked her almost as I liked my pupil Adèle; except that, for a
child whom we have watched over and taught, a closer affection is engendered
than we can give an equally attractive adult acquaintance.
She had taken an amiable
caprice to me. She said I was like Mr. Rivers, only, certainly, she allowed,
"not one-tenth so handsome, though I was a nice neat little soul enough,
but he was an angel." I was, however, good, clever, composed, and firm,
like him. I was a lusus naturae, she affirmed, as a village schoolmistress: she
was sure my previous history, if known, would make a delightful romance.
One evening, while,
with her usual child-like activity, and thoughtless yet not offensive
inquisitiveness, she was rummaging the cupboard and the table-drawer of my
little kitchen, she discovered first two French books, a volume of Schiller, a
German grammar and dictionary, and then my drawing-materials and some sketches,
including a pencil-head of a pretty little cherub-like girl, one of my
scholars, and sundry views from nature, taken in the Vale of Morton and on the
surrounding moors. She was first transfixed with surprise, and then electrified
with delight.
"Had I done these
pictures? Did I know French and German? What a love -- what a miracle I was! I
drew better than her master in the first school in S----. Would I sketch a
portrait of her, to show to papa?"
"With
pleasure," I replied; and I felt a thrill of artist-delight at the idea of
copying from so perfect and radiant a model. She had then on a dark-blue silk
dress; her arms and her neck were bare; her only ornament was her chestnut
tresses, which waved over her shoulders with all the wild grace of natural
curls. I took a sheet of fine card-board, and drew a careful outline. I
promised myself the pleasure of colouring it; and, as it was getting late then,
I told her she must come and sit another day.
She made such a report
of me to her father, that Mr. Oliver himself accompanied her next evening -- a
tall, massive-featured, middle-aged, and grey-headed man, at whose side his
lovely daughter looked like a bright flower near a hoary turret. He appeared a
taciturn, and perhaps a proud personage; but he was very kind to me. The sketch
of Rosamond’s portrait pleased him highly: he said I must make a finished
picture of it. He insisted, too, on my coming the next day to spend the evening
at Vale-Hall.
I went. I found it a
large, handsome residence, showing abundant evidences of wealth in the
proprietor. Rosamond was full of glee and pleasure all the time I stayed. Her
father was affable; and when he entered into conversation with me after tea, he
expressed in strong terms his approbation of what I had done in Morton school,
and said he only feared, from what he saw and heard, I was too good for the
place, and would soon quit it for one more suitable.
"Indeed,"
cried Rosamond, "she is clever enough to be a governess in a high family,
papa."
I thought -- I would
far rather be where I am than in any high family in the land. Mr. Oliver spoke
of Mr. Rivers -- of the Rivers’ family -- with great respect. He said it was a
very old name in that neighbourhood; that the ancestors of the house were
wealthy; that all Morton had once belonged to them; that even now he considered
the representative of that house might, if he liked, make an alliance with the
best. He accounted it a pity that so fine and talented a young man should have
formed the design of going out as a missionary; it was quite throwing a
valuable life away. It appeared, then, that her father would throw no obstacle
in the way of Rosamond’s union with St. John. Mr. Oliver evidently regarded the
young clergyman’s good birth, old name, and sacred profession as sufficient
compensation for the want of fortune.
It was the 5th of
November, and a holiday. My little servant, after helping me to clean my house,
was gone, well satisfied with the fee of a penny for her aid. All about me was
spotless and bright -- scoured floor, polished grate, and well-rubbed chairs. I
had also made myself neat, and had now the afternoon before me to spend as I
would.
The translation of a
few pages of German occupied an hour; then I got my palette and pencils, and
fell to the more soothing, because easier occupation, of completing Rosamond
Oliver’s miniature. The head was finished already: there was but the background
to tint and the drapery to shade off; a touch of carmine, too, to add to the
ripe lips -- a soft curl here and there to the tresses -- a deeper tinge to the
shadow of the lash under the azured eyelid. I was absorbed in the execution of
these nice details, when, after one rapid tap, my door unclosed, admitting St.
John Rivers.
"I am come to see
how you are spending your holiday," he said. "Not, I hope, in
thought? No, that is well: while you draw you will not feel lonely. You see, I
mistrust you still, though you have borne up wonderfully so far. I have brought
you a book for evening solace," and he laid on the table a new publication
-- a poem: one of those genuine productions so often vouchsafed to the
fortunate public of those days -- the golden age of modern literature. Alas!
the readers of our era are less favoured. But courage! I will not pause either
to accuse or repine. I know poetry is not dead, nor genius lost; nor has Mammon
gained power over either, to bind or slay: they will both assert their
existence, their presence, their liberty and strength again one day. Powerful
angels, safe in heaven! they smile when sordid souls triumph, and feeble ones
weep over their destruction. Poetry destroyed? Genius banished? No! Mediocrity,
no: do not let envy prompt you to the thought. No; they not only live, but
reign and redeem: and without their divine influence spread everywhere, you
would be in hell -- the hell of your own meanness.
While I was eagerly
glancing at the bright pages of Marmion (for Marmion it was), St. John stooped
to examine my drawing. His tall figure sprang erect again with a start: he said
nothing. I looked up at him: he shunned my eye. I knew his thoughts well, and could
read his heart plainly; at the moment I felt calmer and cooler than he: I had
then temporarily the advantage of him, and I conceived an inclination to do him
some good, if I could.
"With all his
firmness and self-control," thought I, "he tasks himself too far:
locks every feeling and pang within -- expresses, confesses, imparts nothing. I
am sure it would benefit him to talk a little about this sweet Rosamond, whom
he thinks he ought not to marry: I will make him talk."
I said first,
"Take a chair, Mr. Rivers." But he answered, as he always did, that
he could not stay. "Very well," I responded, mentally, "stand if
you like; but you shall not go just yet, I am determined: solitude is at least
as bad for you as it is for me. I’ll try if I cannot discover the secret spring
of your confidence, and find an aperture in that marble breast through which I
can shed one drop of the balm of sympathy."
"Is this portrait
like?" I asked bluntly.
"Like! Like whom?
I did not observe it closely."
"You did, Mr.
Rivers."
He almost started at my
sudden and strange abruptness: he looked at me astonished. "Oh, that is
nothing yet," I muttered within. "I don’t mean to be baffled by a
little stiffness on your part; I’m prepared to go to considerable lengths."
I continued, "You observed it closely and distinctly; but I have no
objection to your looking at it again," and I rose and placed it in his
hand.
"A well-executed
picture," he said; "very soft, clear colouring; very graceful and
correct drawing."
"Yes, yes; I know
all that. But what of the resemblance? Who is it like?"
Mastering some
hesitation, he answered, "Miss Oliver, I presume."
"Of course. And
now, Sir, to reward you for the accurate guess, I will promise to paint you a
careful and faithful duplicate of this very picture, provided you admit that
the gift would be acceptable to you. I don’t wish to throw away my time and
trouble on an offering you would deem worthless."
He continued to gaze at
the picture: the longer he looked, the firmer he held it, the more he seemed to
covet it. "It is like!" he murmured; "the eye is well managed:
the colour, light, expression, are perfect. It smiles!"
"Would it comfort,
or would it wound you to have a similar painting? Tell me that. When you are at
Madagascar, or at the Cape, or in India, would it be a consolation to have that
memento in your possession? or would the sight of it bring recollections
calculated to enervate and distress?"
He now furtively raised
his eyes: he glanced at me, irresolute, disturbed: he again surveyed the
picture.
"That I should
like to have it is certain: whether it would be judicious or wise is another
question."
Since I had ascertained
that Rosamond really preferred him, and that her father was not likely to
oppose the match, I -- less exalted in my views than St. John -- had been
strongly disposed in my own heart to advocate their union. It seemed to me
that, should he become the possessor of Mr. Oliver’s large fortune, he might do
as much good with it as if he went and laid his genius out to wither, and his
strength to waste, under a tropical sun. With this persuasion I now answered:
--
"As far as I can
see, it would be wiser and more judicious if you were to take to yourself the
original at once."
By this time he had sat
down: he had laid the picture on the table before him, and with his brow
supported on both hands, hung fondly over it. I discerned he was now neither
angry nor shocked at my audacity. I saw even that to be thus frankly addressed
on a subject he had deemed unapproachable -- to hear it thus freely handled --
was beginning to be felt by him as a new pleasure -- an unhoped-for relief.
Reserved people often really need the frank discussion of their sentiments and
griefs more than the expansive. The sternest-seeming stoic is human after all;
and to "burst" with boldness and good will into "the silent
sea" of their souls is often to confer on them the first of obligations.
"She likes you, I
am sure," said I, as I stood behind his chair, "and her father
respects you. Moreover, she is a sweet girl -- rather thoughtless; but you
would have sufficient thought for both yourself and her. You ought to marry
her."
"Does she like
me?" he asked.
"Certainly; better
than she likes any one else. She talks of you continually: there is no subject
she enjoys so much or touches upon so often."
"It is very
pleasant to hear this," he said -- "very: go on for another quarter
of an hour." And he actually took out his watch and laid it upon the table
to measure the time.
"But where is the
use of going on," I asked, "when you are probably preparing some iron
blow of contradiction, or forging a fresh chain to fetter your heart?"
"Don’t imagine
such hard things. Fancy me yielding and melting, as I am doing: human love rising
like a freshly opened fountain in my mind and overflowing with sweet inundation
all the field I have so carefully and with such labour prepared -- so
assiduously sown with the seeds of good intentions, of self-denying plans. And
now it is deluged with a nectarous flood -- the young germs swamped --
delicious poison cankering them: now I see myself stretched on an ottoman in
the drawing-room at Vale-Hall at my bride Rosamond Oliver’s feet: she is
talking to me with her sweet voice -- gazing down on me with those eyes your
skilful hand has copied so well -- smiling at me with these coral lips. She is
mine -- I am hers -- this present life and passing world suffice to me. Hush!
say nothing -- my heart is full of delight -- my senses are entranced -- let the
time I marked pass in peace."
I humoured him: the
watch ticked on: he breathed fast and low: I stood silent. Amidst this hush the
quarter sped; he replaced the watch, laid the picture down, rose, and stood on
the hearth.
"Now," said
he, "that little space was given to delirium and delusion. I rested my
temples on the breast of temptation, and put my neck voluntarily under her yoke
of flowers; I tasted her cup. The pillow was burning: there is an asp in the
garland: the wine has a bitter taste: her promises are hollow -- her offers
false: I see and know all this."
I gazed at him in
wonder.
"It is
strange," pursued he, "that while I love Rosamond Oliver so wildly --
with all the intensity, indeed, of a first passion, the object of which is
exquisitely beautiful, graceful, and fascinating -- I experience at the same
time a calm, unwarped consciousness that she would not make me a good wife;
that she is not the partner suited to me; that I should discover this within a
year after marriage; and that to twelve months’ rapture would succeed a
lifetime of regret. This I know."
"Strange
indeed!" I could not help ejaculating.
"While something
in me," he went on, "is acutely sensible to her charms, something
else is as deeply impressed with her defects: they are such that she could
sympathise in nothing I aspired to -- co-operate in nothing I undertook.
Rosamond a sufferer, a labourer, a female apostle? Rosamond a missionary’s
wife? No!"
"But you need not
be a missionary. You might relinquish that scheme."
"Relinquish! What!
my vocation? My great work? My foundation laid on earth for a mansion in
heaven? My hopes of being numbered in the band who have merged all ambitions in
the glorious one of bettering their race -- of carrying knowledge into the realms
of ignorance -- of substituting peace for war -- freedom for bondage --
religion for superstition -- the hope of heaven for the fear of hell? Must I
relinquish that? It is dearer than the blood in my veins. It is what I have to
look forward to, and to live for."
After a considerable
pause, I said -- "And Miss Oliver? Are her disappointment and sorrow of no
interest to you?"
"Miss Oliver is
ever surrounded by suitors and flatterers: in less than a month, my image will
be effaced from her heart. She will forget me; and will marry, probably, some
one who will make her far happier than I should do."
"You speak coolly
enough; but you suffer in the conflict. You are wasting away."
"No. If I get a
little thin, it is with anxiety about my prospects, yet unsettled -- my
departure, continually procrastinated. Only this morning, I received
intelligence that the successor, whose arrival I have been so long expecting,
cannot be ready to replace me for three months to come yet; and perhaps the
three months may extend to six."
"You tremble and
become flushed whenever Miss Oliver enters the schoolroom."
Again the surprised
expression crossed his face. He had not imagined that a woman would dare to
speak so to a man. For me, I felt at home in this sort of discourse. I could
never rest in communication with strong, discreet, and refined minds, whether
male or female, till I had passed the outworks of conventional reserve, and
crossed the threshold of confidence, and won a place by their heart’s very
hearthstone.
"You are
original," said he, "and not timid. There is something brave in your
spirit, as well as penetrating in your eye; but allow me to assure you that you
partially misinterpret my emotions. You think them more profound and potent
than they are. You give me a larger allowance of sympathy than I have a just
claim to. When I colour, and when I shake before Miss Oliver, I do not pity
myself. I scorn the weakness. I know it is ignoble: a mere fever of the flesh:
not, I declare, the convulsion of the soul. That is just as fixed as a rock,
firm set in the depths of a restless sea. Know me to be what I am -- a cold,
hard man."
I smiled incredulously.
"You have taken my
confidence by storm," he continued, "and now it is much at your
service. I am simply, in my original state -- stripped of that blood-bleached
robe with which Christianity covers human deformity -- a cold, hard, ambitious
man. Natural affection only, of all the sentiments, has permanent power over
me. Reason, and not feeling, is my guide; my ambition is unlimited: my desire
to rise higher, to do more than others, insatiable. I honour endurance,
perseverance, industry, talent; because these are the means by which men
achieve great ends and mount to lofty eminence. I watch your career with
interest, because I consider you a specimen of a diligent, orderly, energetic
woman: not because I deeply compassionate what you have gone through, or what
you still suffer."
"You would
describe yourself as a mere pagan philosopher," I said.
"No. There is this
difference between me and deistic philosophers: I believe; and I believe the
Gospel. You missed your epithet. I am not a pagan, but a Christian philosopher
-- a follower of the sect of Jesus. As His disciple I adopt His pure, His
merciful, His benignant doctrines. I advocate them: I am sworn to spread them.
Won in youth to religion, she has cultivated my original qualities thus: --
From the minute germ, natural affection, she has developed the overshadowing
tree, philanthropy. From the wild stringy root of human uprightness, she has
reared a due sense of the Divine justice. Of the ambition to win power and
renown for my wretched self, she has formed the ambition to spread my Master’s
kingdom; to achieve victories for the standard of the cross. So much has
religion done for me; turning the original materials to the best account;
pruning and training nature. But she could not eradicate nature: nor will it be
eradicated ‘till this mortal shall put on immortality.’"
Having said this, he
took his hat, which lay on the table beside my palette. Once more he looked at
the portrait.
"She is
lovely," he murmured. "She is well named the Rose of the World,
indeed!"
"And may I not
paint one like it for you?"
"Cui bono?
No."
He drew over the
picture the sheet of thin paper on which I was accustomed to rest my hand in
painting, to prevent the card-board from being sullied. What he suddenly saw on
this blank paper, it was impossible for me to tell; but something had caught
his eye. He took it up with a snatch; he looked at the edge; then shot a glance
at me, inexpressibly peculiar, and quite incomprehensible: a glance that seemed
to take and make note of every point in my shape, face, and dress; for it
traversed all, quick, keen as lightning. His lips parted, as if to speak: but
he checked the coming sentence, whatever it was.
"What is the
matter?" I asked.
"Nothing in the
world," was the reply; and, replacing the paper, I saw him dexterously
tear a narrow slip from the margin. It disappeared in his glove; and, with one
hasty nod and "good-afternoon," he vanished.
"Well!" I
exclaimed, using an expression of the district, "that caps the globe,
however!"
I, in my turn,
scrutinised the paper; but saw nothing on it save a few dingy stains of paint
where I had tried the tint in my pencil. I pondered the mystery a minute or
two; but finding it insolvable, and being certain it could not be of much
moment, I dismissed, and soon forgot it.
WHEN Mr. St. John went,
it was beginning to snow; the whirling storm continued all night. The next day
a keen wind brought fresh and blinding falls; by twilight the valley was
drifted up and almost impassable. I had closed my shutter, laid a mat to the
door to prevent the snow from blowing in under it, trimmed my fire, and after
sitting nearly an hour on the hearth listening to the muffled fury of the
tempest, I lit a candle, took down Marmion, and beginning --
"Day set on Norham’s
castled steep,
And Tweed’s fair river
broad and deep,
And Cheviot’s mountains
lone;
The massive towers, the
donjon keep,
The flanking walls that
round them sweep,
In yellow lustre
shone"
I soon forgot storm in
music.
I heard a noise: the
wind, I thought, shook the door. No; it was St. John Rivers, who, lifting the
latch, came in out of the frozen hurricane -- the howling darkness -- and stood
before me: the cloak that covered his tall figure all white as a glacier. I was
almost in consternation, so little had I expected any guest from the blocked-up
vale that night.
"Any ill
news?" I demanded. "Has anything happened?"
"No. How very
easily alarmed you are!" he answered, removing his cloak and hanging it up
against the door, towards which he again coolly pushed the mat which his
entrance had deranged. He stamped the snow from his boots.
"I shall sully the
purity of your floor," said he, "but you must excuse me for
once." Then he approached the fire. "I have had hard work to get
here, I assure you," he observed, as he warmed his hands over the flame.
"One drift took me up to the waist; happily the snow is quite soft
yet."
"But why are you
come?" I could not forbear saying.
"Rather an
inhospitable question to put to a visitor; but since you ask it, I answer
simply to have a little talk with you; I got tired of my mute books and empty
rooms. Besides, since yesterday I have experienced the excitement of a person
to whom a tale has been half-told, and who is impatient to hear the
sequel."
He sat down. I recalled
his singular conduct of yesterday, and really I began to fear his wits were
touched. If he were insane, however, his was a very cool and collected
insanity: I had never seen that handsome-featured face of his look more like
chiselled marble than it did just now, as he put aside his snow-wet hair from
his forehead and let the firelight shine free on his pale brow and cheek as
pale, where it grieved me to discover the hollow trace of care or sorrow now so
plainly graved. I waited, expecting he would say something I could at least
comprehend; but his hand was now at his chin, his finger on his lip: he was
thinking. It struck me that his hand looked wasted like his face. A perhaps
uncalled-for gush of pity came over my heart: I was moved to say: --
"I wish Diana or
Mary would come and live with you: it is too bad that you should be quite
alone; and you are recklessly rash about your own health."
"Not at all,"
said he: "I care for myself when necessary. I am well now. What do you see
amiss in me?"
This was said with a
careless, abstracted indifference, which showed that my solicitude was, at
least in his opinion, wholly superfluous. I was silenced.
He still slowly moved
his finger over his upper lip, and still his eye dwelt dreamily on the glowing
grate; thinking it urgent to say something, I asked him presently if he felt
any cold draught from the door, which was behind him.
"No, no!" he
responded shortly and somewhat testily.
"Well," I
reflected, "if you won’t talk, you may be still; I’ll let you alone now,
and return to my book."
So I snuffed the candle
and resumed the perusal of Marmion. He soon stirred; my eye was instantly drawn
to his movements; he only took out a morocco pocket-book, thence produced a
letter, which he read in silence, folded it, put it back, relapsed into
meditation. It was vain to try to read with such an inscrutable fixture before
me; nor could I, in my impatience, consent to be dumb; he might rebuff me if he
liked, but talk I would.
"Have you heard
from Diana and Mary lately?"
"Not since the
letter I showed you a week ago."
"There has not
been any change made about your own arrangements? You will not be summoned to
leave England sooner than you expected?"
"I fear not,
indeed: such chance is too good to befall me." Baffled so far, I changed
my ground. I bethought myself to talk about the school and my scholars.
"Mary Garrett’s
mother is better, and Mary came back to the school this morning, and I shall
have four new girls next week from the Foundry Close -- they would have come
to-day but for the snow."
"Indeed!"
"Mr. Oliver pays
for two."
"Does he?"
"He means to give
the whole school a treat at Christmas."
"I know."
"Was it your
suggestion?"
"No."
"Whose,
then?"
"His daughter’s, I
think."
"It is like her:
she is so good-natured."
"Yes."
Again came the blank of
a pause: the clock struck eight strokes. It aroused him; he uncrossed his legs,
sat erect, turned to me.
"Leave your book a
moment, and come a little nearer the fire," he said.
Wondering, and of my
wonder finding no end, I complied.
"Half an hour
ago," he pursued, "I spoke of my impatience to hear the sequel of a
tale: on reflection, I find the matter will be better managed by my assuming
the narrator’s part, and converting you into a listener. Before commencing, it
is but fair to warn you that the story will sound somewhat hackneyed in your
ears; but stale details often regain a degree of freshness when they pass
through new lips. For the rest, whether trite or novel, it is short.
"Twenty years ago,
a poor curate -- never mind his name at this moment -- fell in love with a rich
man’s daughter; she fell in love with him, and married him, against the advice
of all her friends, who consequently disowned her immediately after the
wedding. Before two years passed, the rash pair were both dead, and laid
quietly side by side under one slab. (I have seen their grave; it formed part
of the pavement of a huge churchyard surrounding the grim, soot-black old
cathedral of an overgrown manufacturing town in ----shire.) They left a
daughter, which, at its very birth, Charity received in her lap -- cold as that
of the snow-drift I almost stuck fast in to-night. Charity carried the
friendless thing to the house of its rich maternal relations; it was reared by
an aunt-in-law, called (I come to names now) Mrs. Reed of Gateshead. You start
-- did you hear a noise? I daresay it is only a rat scrambling along the
rafters of the adjoining schoolroom: it was a barn before I had it repaired and
altered, and barns are generally haunted by rats. -- To proceed. Mrs. Reed kept
the orphan ten years: whether it was happy or not with her, I cannot say, never
having been told; but at the end of that time she transferred it to a place you
know -- being no other than Lowood School, where you so long resided yourself.
It seems her career there was very honourable: from a pupil, she became a
teacher, like yourself -- really it strikes me there are parallel points in her
history and yours -- she left it to be a governess: there, again, your fates
were analogous; she undertook the education of the ward of a certain Mr.
Rochester."
"Mr. Rivers!"
I interrupted.
"I can guess your
feelings," he said, "but restrain them for a while: I have nearly
finished; hear me to the end. Of Mr. Rochester’s character I know nothing, but
the one fact that he professed to offer honourable marriage to this young girl,
and that at the very altar she discovered he had a wife yet alive, though a
lunatic. What his subsequent conduct and proposals were is a matter of pure
conjecture; but when an event transpired which rendered inquiry after the
governess necessary, it was discovered she was gone -- no one could tell when,
where, or how. She had left Thornfield-Hall in the night; every research after
her course had been vain: the country had been scoured far and wide; no vestige
of information could be gathered respecting her. Yet that she should be found
is become a matter of serious urgency: advertisements have been put in all the
papers; I myself have received a letter from one Mr. Briggs, a solicitor,
communicating the details I have just imparted. Is it not an odd tale?"
"Just tell me
this," said I, "and since you know so much, you surely can tell it me
-- what of Mr. Rochester? How and where is he? What is he doing? Is he
well?"
"I am ignorant of
all concerning Mr. Rochester: the letter never mentions him but to narrate the
fraudulent and illegal attempt I have adverted to. You should rather ask the
name of the governess -- the nature of the event which requires her
appearance."
"Did no one go to
Thornfield-Hall, then? Did no one see Mr. Rochester?"
"I suppose
not."
"But they wrote to
him?"
"Of course."
"And what did he
say? Who has his letters?"
"Mr. Briggs
intimates that the answer to his application was not from Mr. Rochester, but
from a lady: it is signed ‘Alice Fairfax.’"
I felt cold and
dismayed: my worst fears then were probably true: he had in all probability
left England and rushed in reckless desperation to some former haunt on the
Continent. And what opiate for his severe sufferings -- what object for his
strong passions -- had he sought there? I dared not answer the question. Oh, my
poor master -- once almost my husband -- whom I had often called "my dear
Edward!"
"He must have been
a bad man," observed Mr. Rivers.
"You don’t know
him -- don’t pronounce an opinion upon him," I said, with warmth.
"Very well,"
he answered quietly: "and indeed my head is otherwise occupied than with
him: I have my tale to finish. Since you won’t ask the governess’s name, I must
tell it of my own accord -- stay -- I have it here -- it is always more
satisfactory to see important points written down, fairly committed to black
and white."
And the pocket-book was
again deliberately produced, opened, sought through; from one of its
compartments was extracted a shabby slip of paper, hastily torn off: I
recognised in its texture and its stains of ultra-marine, and lake, and
vermilion, the ravished margin of the portrait-cover. He got up, held it close
to my eyes: and I read, traced in Indian ink, in my own handwriting, the words
"JANE EYRE" -- the work doubtless of some moment of abstraction.
"Briggs wrote to
me of a Jane Eyre:" he said, "the advertisements demanded a Jane
Eyre: I knew a Jane Elliott. -- I confess I had my suspicions, but it was only
yesterday afternoon they were at once resolved into certainty. You own the name
and renounce the alias?"
"Yes -- yes -- but
where is Mr. Briggs? He perhaps knows more of Mr. Rochester than you do."
"Briggs is in
London. I should doubt his knowing anything at all about Mr. Rochester; it is
not in Mr. Rochester he is interested. Meantime, you forget essential points in
pursuing trifles: you do not inquire why Mr. Briggs sought after you -- what he
wanted with you."
"Well, what did he
want?"
"Merely to tell
you that your uncle, Mr. Eyre of Madeira, is dead; that he has left you all his
property, and that you are now rich -- merely that -- nothing more."
"I! rich?"
"Yes, you, rich --
quite an heiress."
Silence succeeded.
"You must prove
your identity of course," resumed St. John presently: "a step which
will offer no difficulties; you can then enter on immediate possession. Your
fortune is vested in the English funds; Briggs has the will and the necessary documents."
Here was a new card
turned up! It is a fine thing, reader, to be lifted in a moment from indigence
to wealth -- a very fine thing; but not a matter one can comprehend or
consequently enjoy, all at once. And then there are other chances in life far
more thrilling and rapture-giving: this is solid, an affair of the actual
world, nothing ideal about it: all its associations are solid and sober, and
its manifestations are the same. One does not jump, and spring, and shout
hurrah! at hearing one has got a fortune; one begins to consider
responsibilities, and to ponder business; on a base of steady satisfaction rise
certain grave cares, and we contain ourselves, and brood over our bliss with a
solemn brow.
Besides, the words
Legacy, Bequest, go side by side with the words, Death, Funeral. My uncle I had
heard was dead -- my only relative; ever since being made aware of his
existence, I had cherished the hope of one day seeing him: now, I never should.
And then this money came only to me: not to me and a rejoicing family, but to
my isolated self. It was a grand boon doubtless; and independence would be
glorious -- yes, I felt that -- that thought swelled my heart.
"You unbend your
forehead at last," said Mr. Rivers. "I thought Medusa had looked at
you, and that you were turning to stone. Perhaps now you will ask how much you
are worth?"
"How much am I
worth?"
"Oh, a trifle!
Nothing of course to speak of -- twenty thousand pounds, I think they say --
but what is that?"
"Twenty thousand
pounds?"
Here was a new stunner
-- I had been calculating on four or five thousand. This news actually took my
breath for a moment: Mr. St. John, whom I had never heard laugh before, laughed
now.
"Well," said
he, "if you had committed a murder, and I had told you your crime was
discovered, you could scarcely look more aghast."
"It is a large sum
-- don’t you think there is a mistake?"
"No mistake at
all."
"Perhaps you have
read the figures wrong -- it may be 2000!"
"It is written in
letters, not figures, -- twenty thousand."
I again felt rather
like an individual of but average gastronomical powers sitting down to feast
alone at a table spread with provisions for a hundred. Mr. Rivers rose now and
put his cloak on.
"If it were not
such a very wild night," he said, "I would send Hannah down to keep
you company: you look too desperately miserable to be left alone. But Hannah,
poor woman! could not stride the drifts so well as I: her legs are not quite so
long: so I must e’en leave you to your sorrows. Good-night."
He was lifting the
latch: a sudden thought occurred to me.
"Stop one
minute!" I cried.
"Well?"
"It puzzles me to
know why Mr. Briggs wrote to you about me; or how he knew you, or could fancy
that you, living in such an out-of-the-way place, had the power to aid in my
discovery."
"Oh! I am a
clergyman," he said; "and the clergy are often appealed to about odd
matters." Again the latch rattled.
"No; that does not
satisfy me!" I exclaimed: and indeed there was something in the hasty and
unexplanatory reply which, instead of allaying, piqued my curiosity more than
ever.
"It is a very
strange piece of business," I added; "I must know more about
it."
"Another
time."
"No: to-night! --
to-night!" and as he turned from the door, I placed myself between it and
him. He looked rather embarrassed.
"You certainly
shall not go till you have told me all," I said.
"I would rather
not just now."
"You shall! -- you
must!"
"I would rather
Diana or Mary informed you."
Of course these
objections wrought my eagerness to a climax: gratified it must be, and that
without delay; and I told him so.
"But I apprised
you that I was a hard man," said he, "difficult to persuade."
"And I am a hard
woman; -- impossible to put off."
"And then,"
he pursued, "I am cold: no fervour infects me."
"Whereas I am hot,
and fire dissolves ice. The blaze there has thawed all the snow from your
cloak; by the same token, it has streamed on to my floor, and made it like a
trampled street. As you hope ever to be forgiven, Mr. Rivers, the high crime
and misdemeanour of spoiling a sanded kitchen, tell me what I wish to
know."
"Well, then,"
he said, "I yield; if not to your earnestness, to your perseverance: as
stone is worn by continual dropping. Besides, you must know some day, -- as
well now as later. Your name is Jane Eyre?"
"Of course: that
was all settled before."
"You are not,
perhaps, aware that I am your namesake? -- that I was christened St. John Eyre
Rivers?"
"No, indeed! I
remember now seeing the letter E. comprised in your initials written in books
you have at different times lent me; but I never asked for what name it stood.
But what then? Surely --"
I stopped: I could not
trust myself to entertain, much less to express, the thought that rushed upon
me -- that embodied itself, -- that, in a second, stood out a strong, solid
probability. Circumstances knit themselves, fitted themselves, shot into order:
the chain that had been lying hitherto a formless lump of links was drawn out
straight, -- every ring was perfect, the connection complete. I knew, by
instinct, how the matter stood, before St. John had said another word; but I
cannot expect the reader to have the same intuitive perception, so I must
repeat his explanation.
"My mother’s name
was Eyre; she had two brothers; one a clergyman, who married Miss Jane Reed, of
Gateshead; the other, John Eyre, Esq., merchant, late of Funchal, Madeira. Mr.
Briggs, being Mr. Eyre’s solicitor, wrote to us last August to inform us of our
uncle’s death, and to say that he had left his property to his brother the
clergyman’s orphan daughter, overlooking us, in consequence of a quarrel, never
forgiven, between him and my father. He wrote again a few weeks since, to
intimate that the heiress was lost, and asking if we knew anything of her. A
name casually written on a slip of paper has enabled me to find her out. You
know the rest." Again he was going, but I set my back against the door.
"Do let me
speak," I said; "let me have one moment to draw breath and
reflect." I paused -- he stood before me, hat in hand, looking composed
enough. I resumed: --
"Your mother was
my father’s sister?"
"Yes."
"My aunt,
consequently?"
He bowed.
"My uncle John was
your uncle John? You, Diana, and Mary are his sister’s children, as I am his
brother’s child?"
"Undeniably."
"You three, then,
are my cousins; half our blood on each side flows from the same source?"
"We are cousins;
yes."
I surveyed him. It
seemed I had found a brother: one I could be proud of, -- one I could love; and
two sisters, whose qualities were such, that, when I knew them but as mere
strangers, they had inspired me with genuine affection and admiration. The two
girls, on whom, kneeling down on the wet ground, and looking through the low,
latticed window of Moor-House kitchen, I had gazed with so bitter a mixture of
interest and despair, were my near kinswomen; and the young and stately
gentleman who had found me almost dying at his threshold was my blood relation.
Glorious discovery to a lonely wretch! This was wealth indeed! -- wealth to the
heart! -- a mine of pure, genial affections. This was a blessing, bright,
vivid, and exhilarating; -- not like the ponderous gift of gold: rich and
welcome enough in its way, but sobering from its weight. I now clapped my hands
in sudden joy -- my pulse bounded, my veins thrilled.
"Oh, I am glad! --
I am glad!" I exclaimed.
St. John smiled.
"Did I not say you neglected essential points to pursue trifles?" he
asked. "You were serious when I told you you had got a fortune; and now,
for a matter of no moment, you are excited."
"What can you
mean? It may be of no moment to you; you have sisters and don’t care for a
cousin; but I had nobody; and now three relations, -- or two, if you don’t choose
to be counted, -- are born into my world full grown. I say again, I am
glad!"
I walked fast through
the room: I stopped, half suffocated with the thoughts that rose faster than I
could receive, comprehend, settle them: -- thoughts of what might, could,
would, and should be, and that ere long. I looked at the blank wall: it seemed
a sky thick with ascending stars, -- every one lit me to a purpose or delight.
Those who had saved my life, whom, till this hour, I had loved barrenly, I
could now benefit. They were under a yoke: I could free them: they were
scattered, -- I could reunite them: the independence, the affluence which was
mine, might be theirs too. Were we not four? Twenty thousand pounds shared
equally, would be five thousand each, -- enough and to spare: justice would be
done, -- mutual happiness secured. Now the wealth did not weigh on me: now it
was not a mere bequest of coin, -- it was a legacy of life, hope, enjoyment.
How I looked while
these ideas were taking my spirit by storm, I cannot tell; but I perceived soon
that Mr. Rivers had placed a chair behind me, and was gently attempting to make
me sit down on it. He also advised me to be composed; I scorned the insinuation
of helplessness and distraction, shook off his hand, and began to walk about
again.
"Write to Diana
and Mary to-morrow," I said, "and tell them to come home directly.
Diana said they would both consider themselves rich with a thousand pounds, so
with five thousand, they will do very well."
"Tell me where I
can get you a glass of water," said St. John; "you must really make
an effort to tranquillise your feelings."
"Nonsense! and
what sort of an effect will the bequest have on you? Will it keep you in
England, induce you to marry Miss Oliver, and settle down like an ordinary
mortal?"
"You wander: your
head becomes confused. I have been too abrupt in communicating the news; it has
excited you beyond your strength."
"Mr. Rivers! you
quite put me out of patience: I am rational enough; it is you who
misunderstand, or rather who affect to misunderstand."
"Perhaps, if you
explained yourself a little more fully, I should comprehend better."
"Explain! What is
there to explain? You cannot fail to see that twenty thousand pounds, the sum
in question, divided equally between the nephew and three nieces of our uncle,
will give five thousand to each? What I want is, that you should write to your
sisters and tell them of the fortune that has accrued to them."
"To you, you
mean."
"I have intimated
my view of the case: I am incapable of taking any other. I am not brutally
selfish, blindly unjust, or fiendishly ungrateful. Besides, I am resolved I
will have a home and connections. I like Moor-House, and I will live at
Moor-House; I like Diana and Mary, and I will attach myself for life to Diana
and Mary. It would please and benefit me to have five thousand pounds; it would
torment and oppress me to have twenty thousand; which, moreover, could never be
mine in justice, though it might in law. I abandon to you, then, what is
absolutely superfluous to me. Let there be no opposition, and no discussion
about it; let us agree amongst each other, and decide the point at once."
"This is acting on
first impulses; you must take days to consider such a matter, ere your word can
be regarded as valid."
"Oh! if all you
doubt is my sincerity, I am easy: you see the justice of the case?"
"I do see a
certain justice; but it is contrary to all custom. Besides, the entire fortune
is your right: my uncle gained it by his own efforts; he was free to leave it
to whom he would: he left it to you. After all, justice permits you to keep it:
you may, with a clear conscience, consider it absolutely your own."
"With me,"
said I, "it is fully as much a matter of feeling as of conscience: I must
indulge my feelings; I so seldom have had an opportunity of doing so. Were you
to argue, object, and annoy me for a year, I could not forego the delicious
pleasure of which I have caught a glimpse -- that of repaying, in part, a
mighty obligation, and winning to myself life-long friends."
"You think so
now," rejoined St. John, "because you do not know what it is to
possess, nor consequently to enjoy wealth: you cannot form a notion of the
importance twenty thousand pounds would give you; of the place it would enable
you to take in society; of the prospects it would open to you: you cannot
--"
"And you," I
interrupted, "cannot at all imagine the craving I have for fraternal and
sisterly love. I never had a home, I never had brothers or sisters; I must and
will have them now: you are not reluctant to admit me and own me, are
you?"
"Jane, I will be
your brother -- my sisters will be your sisters -- without stipulating for this
sacrifice of your just rights."
"Brother? Yes; at
the distance of a thousand leagues! Sisters? Yes; slaving amongst strangers! I,
wealthy -- gorged with gold I never earned and do not merit! You, penniless!
Famous equality and fraternisation! Close union! Intimate attachment!"
"But, Jane, your
aspirations after family ties and domestic happiness may be realised otherwise
than by the means you contemplate: you may marry."
"Nonsense, again!
Marry! I don’t want to marry, and never shall marry."
"That is saying
too much: such hazardous affirmations are a proof of the excitement under which
you labour."
"It is not saying
too much: I know what I feel, and how averse are my inclinations to the bare
thought of marriage. No one would take me for love; and I will not be regarded
in the light of a mere money speculation. And I do not want a stranger --
unsympathizing, alien, different from me; I want my kindred: those with whom I
have full fellow-feeling. Say again you will be my brother: when you uttered
the words I was satisfied, happy; repeat them, if you can, repeat them
sincerely."
"I think I can. I
know I have always loved my own sisters; and I know on what my affection for
them is grounded, -- respect for their worth and admiration of their talents.
You too have principle and mind: your tastes and habits resemble Diana’s and
Mary’s; your presence is always agreeable to me; in your conversation I have
already for some time found a salutary solace. I feel I can easily and
naturally make room in my heart for you, as my third and youngest sister."
"Thank you: that
contents me for to-night. Now you had better go; for if you stay longer, you
will perhaps irritate me afresh by some mistrustful scruple."
"And the school,
Miss Eyre? It must now be shut up, I suppose?"
"No. I will retain
my post of mistress till you get a substitute."
He smiled approbation:
we shook hands, and he took leave.
I need not narrate in
detail the further struggles I had, and arguments I used, to get matters regarding
the legacy settled as I wished. My task was a very hard one; but, as I was
absolutely resolved -- as my cousins saw at length that my mind was really and
immutably fixed on making a just division of the property -- as they must in
their own hearts have felt the equity of the intention; and must, besides, have
been innately conscious that in my place they would have done precisely what I
wished to do -- they yielded at length so far as to consent to put the affair
to arbitration. The judges chosen were Mr. Oliver and an able lawyer: both
coincided in my opinion: I carried my point. The instruments of transfer were
drawn out: St. John, Diana, Mary, and I, each became possessed of a competency.
IT was near Christmas
by the time all was settled: the season of general holiday approached. I now
closed Morton school, taking care that the parting should not be barren on my
side. Good fortune opens the hand as well as the heart wonderfully; and to give
somewhat when we have largely received, is but to afford a vent to the unusual
ebullition of the sensations. I had long felt with pleasure that many of my
rustic scholars liked me, and when we parted, that consciousness was confirmed:
they manifested their affection plainly and strongly. Deep was my gratification
to find I had really a place in their unsophisticated hearts: I promised them
that never a week should pass in future that I did not visit them, and give
them an hour’s teaching in their school.
Mr. Rivers came up, as
-- having seen the classes, now numbering sixty girls, file out before me, and
locked the door -- I stood with the key in my hand, exchanging a few words of
special farewell with some half-dozen of my best scholars: as decent,
respectable, modest, and well-informed young women as could be found in the
ranks of the British peasantry. And that is saying a great deal; for after all,
the British peasantry are the best taught, best mannered, most self-respecting
of any in Europe: since those days I have seen paysannes and Bäuerinnen; and
the best of them seemed to me ignorant, coarse, and besotted, compared with my
Morton girls.
"Do you consider
you have got your reward for a season of exertion?" asked Mr. Rivers, when
they were gone. "Does not the consciousness of having done some real good
in your day and generation give pleasure?"
"Doubtless."
"And you have only
toiled a few months! Would not a life devoted to the task of regenerating your
race be well spent?"
"Yes," I
said; "but I could not go on for ever so: I want to enjoy my own faculties
as well as to cultivate those of other people. I must enjoy them now; don’t
recall either my mind or body to the school; I am out of it and disposed for
full holiday."
He looked grave.
"What now? What sudden eagerness is this you evince? What are you going to
do?"
"To be active: as
active as I can. And first I must beg you to set Hannah at liberty, and get
somebody else to wait on you."
"Do you want
her?"
"Yes, to go with
me to Moor-House. Diana and Mary will be at home in a week, and I want to have
everything in order against their arrival."
"I understand. I
thought you were for flying off on some excursion. It is better so: Hannah
shall go with you."
"Tell her to be
ready by to-morrow then; and here is the school-room key: I will give you the
key of my cottage in the morning."
He took it. "You
give it up very gleefully," said he; "I don’t quite understand your
light-heartedness, because I cannot tell what employment you propose to
yourself as a substitute for the one you are relinquishing. What aim, what
purpose, what ambition in life have you now?"
"My first aim will
be to clean down (do you comprehend the full force of the expression?) to clean
down Moor-House from chamber to cellar; my next to rub it up with bees-wax,
oil, and an indefinite number of cloths, till it glitters again; my third, to
arrange every chair, table, bed, carpet, with mathematical precision;
afterwards I shall go near to ruin you in coals and peat to keep up good fires
in every room; and lastly, the two days preceding that on which your sisters
are expected will be devoted by Hannah and me to such a beating of eggs,
sorting of currants, grating of spices, compounding of Christmas cakes,
chopping up of materials for mince-pies, and solemnising of other culinary
rites, as words can convey but an inadequate notion of to the uninitiated like
you. My purpose, in short, is to have all things in an absolutely perfect state
of readiness for Diana and Mary before next Thursday; and my ambition is to
give them a beau-ideal of a welcome when they come."
St. John smiled
slightly: still he was dissatisfied.
"It is all very
well for the present," said he; "but seriously, I trust that when the
first flush of vivacity is over, you will look a little higher than domestic
endearments and household joys."
"I mean, on the
contrary, to be busy."
"Jane, I excuse you
for the present: two months’ grace I allow you for the full enjoyment of your
new position, and for pleasing yourself with this late-found charm of
relationship; but then, I hope you will begin to look beyond Moor-House and
Morton, and sisterly society, and the selfish calm and sensual comfort of
civilised affluence. I hope your energies will then once more trouble you with
their strength."
I looked at him with
surprise. "St. John," I said, "I think you are almost wicked to
talk so. I am disposed to be as content as a queen, and you try to stir me up
to restlessness! To what end?"
"To the end of
turning to profit the talents which God has committed to your keeping; and of
which He will surely one day demand a strict account. Jane, I shall watch you
closely and anxiously -- I warn you of that. And try to restrain the
disproportionate fervour with which you throw yourself into commonplace home
pleasures. Don’t cling so tenaciously to ties of the flesh; save your constancy
and ardour for an adequate cause; forbear to waste them on trite transient
objects. Do you hear, Jane?"
"Yes; just as if
you were speaking Greek. I feel I have adequate cause to be happy, and I will
be happy. Good-bye!"
Happy at Moor-House I
was, and hard I worked; and so did Hannah: she was charmed to see how jovial I
could be amidst the bustle of a house turned topsy-turvy -- how I could brush,
and dust, and clean, and cook. And really, after a day or two of confusion
worse confounded, it was delightful by degrees to invoke order from the chaos
ourselves had made. I had previously taken a journey to S---- to purchase some
new furniture: my cousins having given me carte blanche to effect what
alterations I pleased, and a sum having been set aside for that purpose. The
ordinary sitting-room and bed-rooms I left much as they were: for I knew Diana
and Mary would derive more pleasure from seeing again the old homely tables,
and chairs, and beds, than from the spectacle of the smartest innovations.
Still some novelty was necessary, to give to their return the piquancy with
which I wished it to be invested. Dark handsome new carpets and curtains, an
arrangement of some carefully selected antique ornaments in porcelain and
bronze, new coverings, and mirrors, and dressing-cases, for the toilet tables,
answered the end: they looked fresh without being glaring. A spare parlour and
bedroom I refurnished entirely, with old mahogany and crimson upholstery: I
laid canvas on the passage, and carpets on the stairs. When all was finished, I
thought Moor-House as complete a model of bright modest snugness within, as it
was, at this season, a specimen of wintry waste and desert dreariness without.
The eventful Thursday
at length came. They were expected about dark, and ere dusk fires were lit
upstairs and below; the kitchen was in perfect trim; Hannah and I were dressed,
and all was in readiness.
St. John arrived first.
I had entreated him to keep quite clear of the house till everything was
arranged: and, indeed, the bare idea of the commotion, at once sordid and
trivial, going on within its walls sufficed to scare him to estrangement. He
found me in the kitchen, watching the progress of certain cakes for tea, then
baking. Approaching the hearth, he asked, "If I was at last satisfied with
house-maid’s work?" I answered by inviting him to accompany me on a
general inspection of the result of my labours. With some difficulty, I got him
to make the tour of the house. He just looked in at the doors I opened; and
when he had wandered upstairs and downstairs, he said I must have gone through
a great deal of fatigue and trouble to have effected such considerable changes
in so short a time: but not a syllable did he utter indicating pleasure in the
improved aspect of his abode.
This silence damped me.
I thought perhaps the alterations had disturbed some old associations he
valued. I inquired whether this was the case: no doubt in a somewhat
crestfallen tone.
"Not at all; he
had, on the contrary, remarked that I had scrupulously respected every
association: he feared, indeed, I must have bestowed more thought on the matter
than it was worth. How many minutes, for instance, had I devoted to studying
the arrangement of this very room? -- By-the-bye, could I tell him where such a
book was?"
I showed him the volume
on the shelf: he took it down, and withdrawing to his accustomed window recess,
he began to read it.
Now, I did not like
this, reader. St. John was a good man; but I began to feel he had spoken truth
of himself when he said he was hard and cold. The humanities and amenities of
life had no attraction for him -- its peaceful enjoyments no charm. Literally,
he lived only to aspire -- after what was good and great, certainly; but still
he would never rest, nor approve of others resting round him. As I looked at
his lofty forehead, still and pale as a white stone -- at his fine lineaments
fixed in study -- I comprehended all at once that he would hardly make a good
husband: that it would be a trying thing to be his wife. I understood, as by
inspiration, the nature of his love for Miss Oliver; I agreed with him that it
was but a love of the senses. I comprehended how he should despise himself for
the feverish influence it exercised over him; how he should wish to stifle and
destroy it; how he should mistrust its ever conducing permanently to his
happiness or hers. I saw he was of the material from which nature hews her
heroes -- Christian and Pagan -- her law-givers, her statesmen, her conquerors:
a steadfast bulwark for great interests to rest upon; but, at the fireside, too
often a cold cumbrous column, gloomy and out of place.
"This parlour is
not his sphere," I reflected: "the Himalayan ridge or Caffre bush,
even the plague-cursed Guinea Coast swamp would suit him better. Well may he
eschew the calm of domestic life; it is not his element: there his faculties
stagnate -- they cannot develop or appear to advantage. It is in scenes of
strife and danger -- where courage is proved, and energy exercised, and
fortitude tasked -- that he will speak and move, the leader and superior. A
merry child would have the advantage of him on this hearth. He is right to
choose a missionary’s career -- I see it now."
"They are coming!
they are coming!" cried Hannah, throwing open the parlour door. At the
same moment old Carlo barked joyfully. Out I ran. It was now dark; but a
rumbling of wheels was audible. Hannah soon had a lantern lit. The vehicle had
stopped at the wicket; the driver opened the door: first one well-known form,
then another, stepped out. In a minute I had my face under their bonnets, in
contact first with Mary’s soft cheek, then with Diana’s flowing curls. They
laughed -- kissed me -- then Hannah: patted Carlo, who was half wild with
delight; asked eagerly if all was well; and being assured in the affirmative, hastened
into the house.
They were stiff with
their long and jolting drive from Whitcross, and chilled with the frosty night
air; but their pleasant countenances expanded to the cheerful firelight. While
the driver and Hannah brought in the boxes, they demanded St. John. At this
moment he advanced from the parlour. They both threw their arms round his neck
at once. He gave each one quiet kiss, said in a low tone a few words of
welcome, stood a while to be talked to, and then, intimating that he supposed they
would soon rejoin him in the parlour, withdrew there as to a place of refuge.
I had lit their candles
to go upstairs, but Diana had first to give hospitable orders respecting the
driver; this done, both followed me. They were delighted with the renovation
and decorations of their rooms; with the new drapery, and fresh carpets, and rich
tinted china vases: they expressed their gratification ungrudgingly. I had the
pleasure of feeling that my arrangements met their wishes exactly, and that
what I had done added a vivid charm to their joyous return home.
Sweet was that evening.
My cousins, full of exhilaration, were so eloquent in narrative and comment,
that their fluency covered St. John’s taciturnity: he was sincerely glad to see
his sisters; but in their glow of fervour and flow of joy he could not
sympathise. The event of the day -- that is, the return of Diana and Mary --
pleased him; but the accompaniments of that event, the glad tumult, the
garrulous glee of reception irked him: I saw he wished the calmer morrow was
come. In the very meridian of the night’s enjoyment, about an hour after tea, a
rap was heard at the door. Hannah entered with the intimation that "a poor
lad was come, at that unlikely time, to fetch Mr. Rivers to see his mother, who
was drawing away."
"Where does she
live, Hannah?"
"Clear up at
Whitcross Brow, almost four miles off, and moor and moss all the way."
"Tell him I will
go."
"I’m sure, Sir,
you had better not. It’s the worst road to travel after dark that can be: there’s
no track at all over the bog. And then it is such a bitter night -- the keenest
wind you ever felt. You had better send word, Sir, that you will be there in
the morning."
But he was already in
the passage, putting on his cloak; and without one objection, one murmur, he
departed. It was then nine o’clock: he did not return till midnight. Starved
and tired enough he was: but he looked happier than when he set out. He had
performed an act of duty; made an exertion; felt his own strength to do and
deny, and was on better terms with himself.
I am afraid the whole
of the ensuing week tried his patience. It was Christmas week: we took to no
settled employment, but spent it in a sort of merry domestic dissipation. The
air of the moors, the freedom of home, the dawn of prosperity, acted on Diana
and Mary’s spirits like some life-giving elixir: they were gay from morning
till noon, and from noon till night. They could always talk; and their
discourse, witty, pithy, original, had such charms for me, that I preferred
listening to, and sharing in it, to doing anything else. St. John did not rebuke
our vivacity; but he escaped from it: he was seldom in the house; his parish
was large, the population scattered, and he found daily business in visiting
the sick and poor in its different districts.
One morning at
breakfast, Diana, after looking a little pensive for some minutes, asked him,
"If his plans were yet unchanged."
"Unchanged and
unchangeable," was the reply. And he proceeded to inform us that his
departure from England was now definitely fixed for the ensuing year.
"And Rosamond
Oliver?" suggested Mary, the words seeming to escape her lips
involuntarily: for no sooner had she uttered them, than she made a gesture as
if wishing to recall them. St. John had a book in his hand -- it was his
unsocial custom to read at meals -- he closed it, and looked up.
"Rosamond
Oliver," said he, "is about to be married to Mr. Granby, one of the
best connected and most estimable residents in S----, grandson and heir to Sir
Frederic Granby: I had the intelligence from her father yesterday."
His sisters looked at
each other and at me; we all three looked at him: he was serene as glass.
"The match must
have been got up hastily," said Diana: "they cannot have known each
other long."
"But two months:
they met in October at the county ball at S----. But where there are no
obstacles to a union, as in the present case, where the connection is in every
point desirable, delays are unnecessary: they will be married as soon as S----
Place, which Sir Frederic gives up to them, can be refitted for their reception."
The first time I found
St. John alone after this communication, I felt tempted to inquire if the event
distressed him: but he seemed so little to need sympathy, that, so far from
venturing to offer him more, I experienced some shame at the recollection of
what I had already hazarded. Besides, I was out of practice in talking to him:
his reserve was again frozen over, and my frankness was congealed beneath it.
He had not kept his promise of treating me like his sisters; he continually
made little, chilling differences between us, which did not at all tend to the
development of cordiality: in short, now that I was acknowledged his kinswoman,
and lived under the same roof with him, I felt the distance between us to be
far greater than when he had known me only as the village schoolmistress. When
I remembered how far I had once been admitted to his confidence, I could hardly
comprehend his present frigidity.
Such being the case, I
felt not a little surprised when he raised his head suddenly from the desk over
which he was stooping, and said: --
"You see, Jane,
the battle is fought and the victory won."
Startled at being thus
addressed, I did not immediately reply: after a moment’s hesitation I answered:
--
"But are you sure
you are not in the position of those conquerors whose triumphs have cost them
too dear? Would not such another ruin you?"
"I think not; and
if I were, it does not much signify; I shall never be called upon to contend
for such another. The event of the conflict is decisive: my way is now clear; I
thank God for it!" So saying, he returned to his papers and his silence.
As our mutual happiness
(i. e. Diana’s, Mary’s, and mine) settled into a quieter character, and we
resumed our usual habits and regular studies, St. John stayed more at home: he
sat with us in the same room, sometimes for hours together. While Mary drew,
Diana pursued a course of encyclopædic reading she had (to my awe and
amazement) undertaken, and I fagged away at German, he pondered a mystic lore
of his own: that of some Eastern tongue, the acquisition of which he thought
necessary to his plans.
Thus engaged, he
appeared, sitting in his own recess, quiet and absorbed enough; but that blue
eye of his had a habit of leaving the outlandish-looking grammar, and wandering
over, and sometimes fixing upon us, his fellow-students, with a curious
intensity of observation: if caught, it would be instantly withdrawn; yet ever
and anon, it returned searchingly to our table. I wondered what it meant: I
wondered, too, at the punctual satisfaction he never failed to exhibit on an
occasion that seemed to me of small moment, namely, my weekly visit to Morton
school; and still more was I puzzled when, if the day was unfavourable, if
there was snow, or rain, or high wind, and his sisters urged me not to go, he
would invariably make light of their solicitude, and encourage me to accomplish
the task without regard to the elements.
"Jane is not such
a weakling as you would make her," he would say: "she can bear a
mountain blast, or a shower, or a few flakes of snow, as well as any of us. Her
constitution is both sound and elastic; -- better calculated to endure
variations of climate than many more robust."
And when I returned,
sometimes a good deal tired, and not a little weather-beaten, I never dared
complain, because I saw that to murmur would be to vex him: on all occasions
fortitude pleased him; the reverse was a special annoyance.
One afternoon, however,
I got leave to stay at home, because I really had a cold. His sisters were gone
to Morton in my stead: I sat reading Schiller; he, deciphering his crabbed
Oriental scrolls. As I exchanged a translation for an exercise, I happened to
look his way: there I found myself under the influence of the ever-watchful
blue eye. How long it had been searching me through and through, and over and
over, I cannot tell: so keen was it, and yet so cold, I felt for the moment
superstitious -- as if I were sitting in the room with something uncanny.
"Jane, what are
you doing?"
"Learning
German."
"I want you to
give up German and learn Hindostanee."
"You are not in
earnest?"
"In such earnest
that I must have it so: and I will tell you why."
He then went on to
explain that Hindostanee was the language he was himself at present studying;
that, as he advanced, he was apt to forget the commencement; that it would
assist him greatly to have a pupil with whom he might again and again go over
the elements, and so fix them thoroughly in his mind; that his choice had
hovered for some time between me and his sisters; but that he had fixed on me,
because he saw I could sit at a task the longest of the three. Would I do him
this favour? I should not, perhaps, have to make the sacrifice long, as it
wanted now barely three months to his departure.
St. John was not a man
to be lightly refused: you felt that every impression made on him, either for
pain or pleasure, was deep-graved and permanent. I consented. When Diana and
Mary returned, the former found her scholar transferred from her to her
brother: she laughed, and both she and Mary agreed that St. John should never
have persuaded them to such a step. He answered quietly: --
"I know it."
I found him a very
patient, very forbearing, and yet an exacting master: he expected me to do a
great deal; and when I fulfilled his expectations, he, in his own way, fully
testified his approbation. By degrees, he acquired a certain influence over me
that took away my liberty of mind: his praise and notice were more restraining
than his indifference. I could no longer talk or laugh freely when he was by,
because a tiresomely importunate instinct reminded me that vivacity (at least
in me) was distasteful to him. I was so fully aware that only serious moods and
occupations were acceptable, that in his presence every effort to sustain or
follow any other became vain: I fell under a freezing spell. When he said
"go," I went; "come," I came; "do this," I did
it. But I did not love my servitude: I wished, many a time, he had continued to
neglect me.
One evening when, at
bedtime, his sisters and I stood round him, bidding him good-night, he kissed
each of them, as was his custom; and, as was equally his custom, he gave me his
hand. Diana, who chanced to be in a frolicsome humour (she was not painfully
controlled by his will; for hers, in another way, was as strong), exclaimed: --
"St. John! you
used to call Jane your third sister, but you don’t treat her as such: you
should kiss her too."
She pushed me towards
him. I thought Diana very provoking, and felt uncomfortably confused; and while
I was thus thinking and feeling, St. John bent his head; his Greek face was
brought to a level with mine, his eyes questioned my eyes piercingly -- he
kissed me. There are no such things as marble kisses or ice kisses, or I should
say my ecclesiastical cousin’s salute belonged to one of these classes; but
there may be experiment kisses, and his was an experiment kiss. When given, he
viewed me to learn the result; it was not striking: I am sure I did not blush;
perhaps I might have turned a little pale, for I felt as if this kiss were a
seal affixed to my fetters. He never omitted the ceremony afterwards, and the
gravity and quiescence with which I underwent it, seemed to invest it for him
with a certain charm.
As for me, I daily
wished more to please him; but to do so, I felt daily more and more that I must
disown half my nature, stifle half my faculties, wrest my tastes from their
original bent, force myself to the adoption of pursuits for which I had no
natural vocation. He wanted to train me to an elevation I could never reach; it
racked me hourly to aspire to the standard he uplifted. The thing was as
impossible as to mould my irregular features to his correct and classic
pattern, to give to my changeable green eyes the sea-blue tint and solemn
lustre of his own.
Not his ascendancy
alone, however, held me in thrall at present. Of late it had been easy enough
for me to look sad: a cankering evil sat in my heart and drained my happiness
at its source -- the evil of suspense.
Perhaps you think I had
forgotten Mr. Rochester, reader, amidst these changes of place and fortune. Not
for a moment. His idea was still with me, because it was not a vapour sunshine
could disperse, nor a sand-traced effigy storms could wash away; it was a name
graven on a tablet, fated to last as long as the marble it inscribed. The
craving to know what had become of him followed me everywhere; when I was at
Morton, I re-entered my cottage every evening to think of that; and now at
Moor-House, I sought my bed-room each night to brood over it.
In the course of my
necessary correspondence with Mr. Briggs about the will, I had inquired if he
knew anything of Mr. Rochester’s present residence and state of health; but, as
St. John had conjectured, he was quite ignorant of all concerning him. I then
wrote to Mrs. Fairfax, entreating information on the subject. I had calculated
with certainty on this step answering my end: I felt sure it would elicit an
early answer. I was astonished when a fortnight passed without reply; but when
two months wore away, and day after day the post arrived and brought nothing
for me, I fell a prey to the keenest anxiety.
I wrote again: there
was a chance of my first letter having missed. Renewed hope followed renewed
effort: it shone like the former for some weeks, then, like it, it faded,
flickered: not a line, not a word reached me. When half a year wasted in vain
expectancy, my hope died out, and then I felt dark indeed.
A fine spring shone
round me, which I could not enjoy. Summer approached; Diana tried to cheer me:
she said I looked ill, and wished to accompany me to the sea-side. This St.
John opposed; he said I did not want dissipation, I wanted employment; my
present life was too purposeless, I required an aim; and, I suppose, by way of
supplying deficiencies, he prolonged still further my lessons in Hindostanee,
and grew more urgent in requiring their accomplishment: and I, like a fool,
never thought of resisting him -- I could not resist him.
One day I had come to
my studies in lower spirits than usual; the ebb was occasioned by a poignantly
felt disappointment. Hannah had told me in the morning there was a letter for
me, and when I went down to take it, almost certain that the long looked-for
tidings were vouchsafed me at last, I found only an unimportant note from Mr.
Briggs on business. The bitter check had wrung from me some tears; and now, as
I sat poring over the crabbed characters and flourishing tropes of an Indian
scribe, my eyes filled again.
St. John called me to
his side to read; in attempting to do this my voice failed me: words were lost
in sobs. He and I were the only occupants of the parlour: Diana was practising
her music in the drawing-room, Mary was gardening -- it was a very fine May
day, clear, sunny, and breezy. My companion expressed no surprise at this
emotion, nor did he question me as to its cause; he only said: --
"We will wait a
few minutes, Jane, till you are more composed." And while I smothered the
paroxysm with all haste, he sat calm and patient, leaning on his desk, and
looking like a physician watching with the eye of science an expected and fully
understood crisis in a patient’s malady. Having stifled my sobs, wiped my eyes,
and muttered something about not being very well that morning, I resumed my
task, and succeeded in completing it. St. John put away my books and his,
locked his desk, and said: --
"Now, Jane, you
shall take a walk; and with me."
"I will call Diana
and Mary."
"No; I want only
one companion this morning, and that must be you. Put on your things; go out by
the kitchen door: take the road towards the head of Marsh-Glen: I will join you
in a moment."
I know no medium: I
never in my life have known any medium in my dealings with positive, hard
characters, antagonistic to my own, between absolute submission and determined
revolt. I have always faithfully observed the one, up to the very moment of
bursting, sometimes with volcanic vehemence, into the other; and as neither
present circumstances warranted, nor my present mood inclined me to mutiny, I
observed careful obedience to St. John’s directions; and in ten minutes I was
treading the wild track of the glen, side by side with him.
The breeze was from the
west: it came over the hills, sweet with scents of heath and rush; the sky was
of stainless blue; the stream descending the ravine, swelled with past spring
rains, poured along plentiful and clear, catching golden gleams from the sun,
and sapphire tints from the firmament. As we advanced and left the track, we
trod a soft turf, mossy fine and emerald green, minutely enamelled with a tiny
white flower, and spangled with a star-like yellow blossom: the hills,
meantime, shut us quite in; for the glen, towards its head, wound to their very
core.
"Let us rest
here," said St. John, as we reached the first stragglers of a battalion of
rocks, guarding a sort of pass, beyond which the beck rushed down a waterfall;
and where, still a little farther, the mountain shook off turf and flower, had
only heath for raiment and crag for gem -- where it exaggerated the wild to the
savage, and exchanged the fresh for the frowning -- where it guarded the
forlorn hope of solitude, and a last refuge for silence.
I took a seat: St. John
stood near me. He looked up the pass and down the hollow; his glance wandered
away with the stream, and returned to traverse the unclouded heaven which
coloured it: he removed his hat, let the breeze stir his hair and kiss his
brow. He seemed in communion with the genius of the haunt: with his eye he bade
farewell to something.
"And I shall see
it again," he said aloud, "in dreams when I sleep by the Ganges: and
again in a more remote hour -- when another slumber overcomes me -- on the
shore of a darker stream!"
Strange words of a
strange love! An austere patriot’s passion for his fatherland! He sat down; for
half an hour we never spoke; neither he to me nor I to him: that interval past,
he recommenced: --
"Jane, I go in six
weeks; I have taken my berth in an East Indiaman which sails on the twentieth
of June."
"God will protect
you; for you have undertaken His work," I answered.
"Yes," said
he, "there is my glory and joy. I am the servant of an infallible Master.
I am not going out under human guidance, subject to the defective laws and
erring control of my feeble fellow-worms: my king, my lawgiver, my captain, is
the All-perfect. It seems strange to me that all round me do not burn to enlist
under the same banner, -- to join in the same enterprise."
"All have not Your
powers, and it would be folly for the feeble to wish to march with the
strong."
"I do not speak to
the feeble, or think of them: I address only such as are worthy of the work,
and competent to accomplish it."
"Those are few in
number, and difficult to discover."
"You say truly;
but when found, it is right to stir them up -- to urge and exhort them to the
effort -- to show them what their gifts are, and why they were given -- to
speak Heaven’s message in their ear, -- to offer them, direct from God, a place
in the ranks of His chosen."
"If they are
really qualified for the task, will not their own hearts be the first to inform
them of it?"
I felt as if an awful
charm was framing round and gathering over me: I trembled to hear some fatal
word spoken which would at once declare and rivet the spell.
"And what does
your heart say?" demanded St. John.
"My heart is mute,
-- my heart is mute," I answered, struck and thrilled.
"Then I must speak
for it," continued the deep, relentless voice. "Jane, come with me to
India: come as my help-mate and fellow-labourer."
The glen and sky spun
round: the hills heaved! It was as if I had heard a summons from Heaven -- as
if a visionary messenger, like him of Macedonia, had enounced, "Come over
and help us!" But I was no apostle, -- I could not behold the herald, -- I
could not receive his call.
"Oh, St.
John!" I cried, "have some mercy!"
I appealed to one who,
in the discharge of what he believed his duty, knew neither mercy nor remorse.
He continued: --
"God and nature
intended you for a missionary’s wife. It is not personal, but mental endowments
they have given you: you are formed for labour, not for love. A missionary’s
wife you must -- shall be. You shall be mine: I claim you -- not for my
pleasure, but for my Sovereign’s service."
"I am not fit for
it: I have no vocation," I said.
He had calculated on
these first objections: he was not irritated by them. Indeed, as he leaned back
against the crag behind him, folded his arms on his chest, and fixed his
countenance, I saw he was prepared for a long and trying opposition, and had
taken in a stock of patience to last him to its close -- resolved, however,
that that close should be conquest for him.
"Humility,
Jane," said he, "is the groundwork of Christian virtues: you say
right that you are not fit for the work. Who is fit for it? Or who, that ever
was truly called, believed himself worthy of the summons? I, for instance, am
but dust and ashes. With St. Paul, I acknowledge myself the chiefest of
sinners; but I do not suffer this sense of my personal vileness to daunt me. I
know my Leader: that He is just as well as mighty; and while He has chosen a
feeble instrument to perform a great task, He will, from the boundless stores
of His providence, supply the inadequacy of the means to the end. Think like
me, Jane -- trust like me. It is the Rock of Ages I ask you to lean on: do not
doubt but it will bear the weight of your human weakness."
"I do not
understand a missionary life: I have never studied missionary labours."
"There I, humble
as I am, can give you the aid you want: I can set you your task from hour to hour;
stand by you always; help you from moment to moment. This I could do in the
beginning: soon (for I know your powers) you would be as strong and apt as
myself, and would not require my help."
"But my powers --
where are they for this undertaking? I do not feel them. Nothing speaks or
stirs in me while you talk. I am sensible of no light kindling -- no life
quickening -- no voice counselling or cheering. Oh, I wish I could make you see
how much my mind is at this moment like a rayless dungeon, with one shrinking
fear fettered in its depths -- the fear of being persuaded by you to attempt
what I cannot accomplish!"
"I have an answer
for you -- hear it. I have watched you ever since we first met: I have made you
my study for ten months. I have proved you in that time by sundry tests: and
what have I seen and elicited? In the village school I found you could perform
well, punctually, uprightly, labour uncongenial to your habits and
inclinations; I saw you could perform it with capacity and tact: you could win
while you controlled. In the calm with which you learnt you had become suddenly
rich, I read a mind clear of the vice of Demas: -- lucre had no undue power
over you. In the resolute readiness with which you cut your wealth into four
shares, keeping but one to yourself, and relinquishing the three others to the
claim of abstract justice, I recognised a soul that revelled in the flame and
excitement of sacrifice. In the tractability with which, at my wish, you
forsook a study in which you were interested, and adopted another because it
interested me; in the untiring assiduity with which you have since persevered
in it -- in the unflagging energy and unshaken temper with which you have met
its difficulties -- I acknowledge the complement of the qualities I seek. Jane,
you are docile, diligent, disinterested, faithful, constant, and courageous;
very gentle, and very heroic: cease to mistrust yourself -- I can trust you
unreservedly. As a conductress of Indian schools, and a helper amongst Indian
women, your assistance will be to me invaluable."
My iron shroud
contracted round me; persuasion advanced with slow, sure step. Shut my eyes as
I would, these last words of his succeeded in making the way, which had seemed
blocked up, comparatively clear. My work, which had appeared so vague, so
hopelessly diffuse, condensed itself as he proceeded, and assumed a definite
form under his shaping hand. He waited for an answer. I demanded a quarter of
an hour to think, before I again hazarded a reply.
"Very willingly,"
he rejoined; and rising, he strode a little distance up the pass, threw himself
down on a swell of heath, and there lay still.
"I can do what he
wants me to do: I am forced to see and acknowledge that," I meditated --
"That is, if life be spared me. But I feel mine is not the existence to be
long protracted under an Indian sun. -- What then? He does not care for that:
when my time came to die, he would resign me, in all serenity and sanctity, to
the God who gave me. The case is very plain before me. In leaving England, I
should leave a loved but empty land -- Mr. Rochester is not there; and if he
were, what is, what can that ever be to me? My business is to live without him
now: nothing so absurd, so weak as to drag on from day to day, as if I were waiting
some impossible change in circumstances, which might reunite me to him. Of
course (as St. John once said) I must seek another interest in life to replace
the one lost: is not the occupation he now offers me truly the most glorious
man can adopt or God assign? Is it not, by its noble cares and sublime results,
the one best calculated to fill the void left by uptorn affections and
demolished hopes? I believe I must say, Yes -- and yet I shudder. Alas! If I
join St. John, I abandon half myself: if I go to India, I go to premature
death. And how will the interval between leaving England for India, and India
for the grave, be filled? Oh, I know well! That, too, is very clear to my
vision. By straining to satisfy St. John till my sinews ache, I shall satisfy him
-- to the finest central point and farthest outward circle of his expectations.
If I do go with him -- if I do make the sacrifice he urges, I will make it
absolutely: I will throw all on the altar -- heart, vitals, the entire victim.
He will never love me; but he shall approve me; I will show him energies he has
not yet seen, resources he has never suspected. Yes, I can work as hard as he
can, and with as little grudging.
"Consent, then, to
his demand is possible: but for one item -- one dreadful item. It is -- that he
asks me to be his wife, and has no more of a husband’s heart for me than that
frowning giant of a rock, down which the stream is foaming in yonder gorge. He
prizes me as a soldier would a good weapon, and that is all. Unmarried to him,
this would never grieve me; but can I let him complete his calculations --
coolly put into practice his plans -- go through the wedding ceremony? Can I
receive from him the bridal ring, endure all the forms of love (which I doubt
not he would scrupulously observe) and know that the spirit was quite absent?
Can I bear the consciousness that every endearment he bestows is a sacrifice
made on principle? No: such a martyrdom would be monstrous. I will never
undergo it. As his sister, I might accompany him -- not as his wife: I will
tell him so."
I looked towards the
knoll: there he lay, still as a prostrate column; his face turned to me: his
eye beaming watchful and keen. He started to his feet and approached me.
"I am ready to go
to India, if I may go free."
"Your answer
requires a commentary," he said; "it is not clear."
"You have hitherto
been my adopted brother: I, your adopted sister: let us continue as such: you
and I had better not marry."
He shook his head.
"Adopted fraternity will not do in this case. If you were my real sister
it would be different: I should take you, and seek no wife. But as it is,
either our union must be consecrated and sealed by marriage, or it cannot
exist: practical obstacles oppose themselves to any other plan. Do you not see
it, Jane? Consider a moment -- your strong sense will guide you."
I did consider; and
still my sense, such as it was, directed me only to the fact that we did not
love each other as man and wife should: and therefore it inferred we ought not
to marry. I said so. "St. John," I returned, "I regard you as a
brother -- you, me as a sister: so let us continue."
"We cannot -- we
cannot," he answered, with short, sharp determination: "it would not do.
You have said you will go with me to India: remember -- you have said
that."
"Conditionally."
"Well -- well. To
the main point -- the departure with me from England, the co-operation with me
in my future labours -- you do not object. You have already as good as put your
hand to the plough: you are too consistent to withdraw it. You have but one end
to keep in view -- how the work you have undertaken can best be done. Simplify
your complicated interests, feelings, thoughts, wishes, aims; merge all considerations
in one purpose: that of fulfilling with effect -- with power -- the mission of
your great Master. To do so, you must have a coadjutor -- not a brother; that
is a loose tie: but a husband. I, too, do not want a sister: a sister might any
day be taken from me. I want a wife: the sole helpmeet I can influence
efficiently in life, and retain absolutely till death."
I shuddered as he
spoke: I felt his influence in my marrow -- his hold on my limbs.
"Seek one
elsewhere than in me, St. John: seek one fitted to you."
"One fitted to my
purpose, you mean -- fitted to my vocation. Again I tell you it is not the
insignificant private individual -- the mere man, with the man’s selfish senses
-- I wish to mate: it is the missionary."
"And I will give the
missionary my energies -- it is all he wants -- but not myself: that would be
only adding the husk and shell to the kernel. For them he has no use: I retain
them."
"You cannot -- you
ought not. Do you think God will be satisfied with half an oblation? Will He
accept a mutilated sacrifice? It is the cause of God I advocate: it is under
his standard I enlist you. I cannot accept on His behalf a divided allegiance:
it must be entire."
"Oh! I will give
my heart to God," I said. "You do not want it."
I will not swear,
reader, that there was not something of repressed sarcasm both in the tone in
which I uttered this sentence, and in the feeling that accompanied it. I had
silently feared St. John till now, because I had not understood him. He had
held me in awe, because he had held me in doubt. How much of him was saint, how
much mortal, I could not heretofore tell: but revelations were being made in
this conference: the analysis of his nature was proceeding before my eyes. I
saw his fallibilities: I comprehended them. I understood that, sitting there
where I did, on the bank of heath, and with that handsome form before me, I sat
at the feet of a man, erring as I. The veil fell from his hardness and
despotism. Having felt in him the presence of these qualities, I felt his
imperfection and took courage. I was with an equal -- one with whom I might
argue -- one whom, if I saw good, I might resist.
He was silent after I
had uttered the last sentence, and I presently risked an upward glance at his
countenance. His eye, bent on me, expressed at once stern surprise and keen
inquiry. "Is she sarcastic, and sarcastic to me!" it seemed to say.
"What does this
signify?"
"Do not let us
forget that this is a solemn matter," he said ere long; "one of which
we may neither think nor talk lightly without sin. I trust, Jane, you are in
earnest when you say you will give your heart to God: it is all I want. Once
wrench your heart from man, and fix it on your Maker, the advancement of that
Maker’s spiritual kingdom on earth will be your chief delight and endeavour;
you will be ready to do at once whatever furthers that end. You will see what
impetus would be given to your efforts and mine by our physical and mental
union in marriage: the only union that gives a character of permanent
conformity to the destinies and designs of human beings; and, passing over all
minor caprices -- all trivial difficulties and delicacies of feeling -- all
scruple about the degree, kind, strength or tenderness of mere personal
inclination -- you will hasten to enter into that union at once."
"Shall I?" I
said briefly; and I looked at his features, beautiful in their harmony, but
strangely formidable in their still severity; at his brow, commanding but not
open; at his eyes, bright and deep and searching, but never soft; at his tall
imposing figure; and fancied myself in idea his wife. Oh! it would never do! As
his curate, his comrade, all would be right: I would cross oceans with him in
that capacity; toil under Eastern suns, in Asian deserts with him in that
office; admire and emulate his courage and devotion and vigour; accommodate
quietly to his masterhood; smile undisturbed at his ineradicable ambition;
discriminate the Christian from the man: profoundly esteem the one, and freely
forgive the other. I should suffer often, no doubt, attached to him only in
this capacity: my body would be under rather a stringent yoke, but my heart and
mind would be free. I should still have my unblighted self to turn to: my
natural unenslaved feelings with which to communicate in moments of loneliness.
There would be recesses in my mind which would be only mine, to which he never
came, and sentiments growing there fresh and sheltered which his austerity
could never blight, nor his measured warrior-march trample down: but as his
wife -- at his side always, and always restrained, and always checked -- forced
to keep the fire of my nature continually low, to compel it to burn inwardly
and never utter a cry, though the imprisoned flame consumed vital after vital
-- this would be unendurable.
"St. John!" I
exclaimed, when I had got so far in my meditation.
"Well?" he
answered icily.
"I repeat I freely
consent to go with you as your fellow-missionary, but not as your wife; I
cannot marry you and become part of you."
"A part of me you
must become," he answered steadily: "otherwise the whole bargain is
void. How can I, a man not yet thirty, take out with me to India a girl of
nineteen, unless she be married to me? How can we be for ever together -- sometimes
in solitudes, sometimes amidst savage tribes -- and unwed?"
"Very well,"
I said shortly; "under the circumstances, quite as well as if I were
either your real sister, or a man and a clergyman like yourself."
"It is known that
you are not my sister; I cannot introduce you as such: to attempt it would be
to fasten injurious suspicions on us both. And for the rest, though you have a
man’s vigorous brain, you have a woman’s heart, and -- it would not do."
"It would
do," I affirmed with some disdain, "perfectly well. I have a woman’s
heart, but not where you are concerned; for you I have only a comrade’s
constancy; a fellow-soldier’s frankness, fidelity, fraternity, if you like; a
neophyte’s respect and submission to his hierophant: nothing more -- don’t
fear."
"It is what I
want," he said, speaking to himself; "it is just what I want. And
there are obstacles in the way: they must be hewn down. Jane, you would not
repent marrying me; be certain of that; we must be married. I repeat it: there
is no other way; and undoubtedly enough of love would follow upon marriage to
render the union right even in your eyes."
"I scorn your idea
of love," I could not help saying, as I rose up and stood before him,
leaning my back against the rock. "I scorn the counterfeit sentiment you
offer: yes, St. John, and I scorn you when you offer it."
He looked at me
fixedly, compressing his well-cut lips while he did so. Whether he was incensed
or surprised, or what, it was not easy to tell: he could command his
countenance thoroughly.
"I scarcely
expected to hear that expression from you," he said: "I think I have
done and uttered nothing to deserve scorn."
I was touched by his
gentle tone, and overawed by his high, calm mien.
"Forgive me the
words, St. John; but it is your own fault that I have been roused to speak so
unguardedly. You have introduced a topic on which our natures are at variance
-- a topic we should never discuss: the very name of love is an apple of
discord between us -- if the reality were required, what should we do? How
should we feel? My dear cousin, abandon your scheme of marriage -- forget
it."
"No," said
he; "it is a long-cherished scheme, and the only one which can secure my
great end: but I shall urge you no further at present. To-morrow, I leave home
for Cambridge: I have many friends there to whom I should wish to say farewell.
I shall be absent a fortnight -- take that space of time to consider my offer:
and do not forget that if you reject it, it is not me you deny, but God.
Through my means, He opens to you a noble career; as my wife only can you enter
upon it. Refuse to be my wife, and you limit yourself for ever to a track of
selfish ease and barren obscurity. Tremble lest in that case you should be
numbered with those who have denied the faith, and are worse than
infidels!"
He had done. Turning
from me, he once more --
"Looked to river,
looked to hill:"
But this time his
feelings were all pent in his heart: I was not worthy to hear them uttered. As
I walked by his side homeward, I read well in his iron silence all he felt
towards me: the disappointment of an austere and despotic nature, which has met
resistance where it expected submission -- the disapprobation of a cool,
inflexible judgment, which has detected in another feelings and views in which
it has no power to sympathise: in short, as a man, he would have wished to
coerce me into obedience: it was only as a sincere Christian he bore so
patiently with my perversity, and allowed so long a space for reflection and
repentance.
That night, after he
had kissed his sisters, he thought proper to forget even to shake hands with
me, but left the room in silence. I -- who, though I had no love, had much
friendship for him -- was hurt by the marked omission: so much hurt that tears
started to my eyes.
"I see you and St.
John have been quarrelling, Jane," said Diana, "during your walk on
the moor. But go after him; he is now lingering in the passage expecting you --
he will make it up."
I have not much pride
under such circumstances: I would always rather be happy than dignified; and I
ran after him -- he stood at the foot of the stairs.
"Good-night, St.
John," said I.
"Good-night, Jane,"
he replied calmly.
"Then shake
hands," I added.
What a cold, loose
touch he impressed on my fingers! He was deeply displeased by what had occurred
that day; cordiality would not warm, nor tears move him. No happy
reconciliation was to be had with him -- no cheering smile or generous word:
but still the Christian was patient and placid; and when I asked him if he
forgave me, he answered that he was not in the habit of cherishing the
remembrance of vexation; that he had nothing to forgive, not having been
offended.
And with that answer he
left me. I would much rather he had knocked me down.
HE did not leave for
Cambridge the next day, as he had said he would. He deferred his departure a
whole week, and during that time he made me feel what severe punishment a good
yet stern, a conscientious yet implacable man can inflict on one who has
offended him. Without one overt act of hostility, one upbraiding word he
contrived to impress me momently with the conviction that I was put beyond the
pale of his favour.
Not that St. John
harboured a spirit of unchristian vindictiveness -- not that he would have
injured a hair of my head, if it had been fully in his power to do so. Both by
nature and principle, he was superior to the mean gratification of vengeance:
he had forgiven me for saying I scorned him and his love, but he had not
forgotten the words; and as long as he and I lived he never would forget them.
I saw by his look, when he turned to me, that they were always written on the
air between me and him; whenever I spoke, they sounded in my voice to his ear,
and their echo toned every answer he gave me.
He did not abstain from
conversing with me: he even called me as usual each morning to join him at his
desk; and I fear the corrupt man within him had a pleasure unimparted to, and
unshared by, the pure Christian, in evincing with what skill he could, while
acting and speaking apparently just as usual, extract from every deed and every
phrase the spirit of interest and approval which had formerly communicated a
certain austere charm to his language and manner. To me, he was in reality
become no longer flesh, but marble; his eye was a cold, bright, blue gem; his
tongue a speaking instrument -- nothing more.
All this was torture to
me -- refined, lingering torture. It kept up a slow fire of indignation and a
trembling trouble of grief, which harassed and crushed me altogether. I felt
how -- if I were his wife, this good man, pure as the deep sunless source,
could soon kill me, without drawing from my veins a single drop of blood, or
receiving on his own crystal conscience the faintest stain of crime. Especially
I felt this when I made any attempt to propitiate him. No ruth met my ruth. He
experienced no suffering from estrangement -- no yearning after reconciliation;
and though, more than once, my fast falling tears blistered the page over which
we both bent, they produced no more effect on him than if his heart had been
really a matter of stone or metal. To his sisters, meantime, he was somewhat
kinder than usual: as if afraid that mere coldness would not sufficiently
convince me how completely I was banished and banned, he added the force of
contrast; and this I am sure he did not by malice, but on principle.
The night before he
left home, happening to see him walking in the garden about sunset, and
remembering, as I looked at him, that this man, alienated as he now was, had
once saved my life, and that we were near relations, I was moved to make a last
attempt to regain his friendship. I went out and approached him as he stood
leaning over the little gate; I spoke to the point at once.
"St. John, I am
unhappy because you are still angry with me. Let us be friends."
"I hope we are
friends," was the unmoved reply; while he still watched the rising of the
moon, which he had been contemplating as I approached.
"No, St. John, we
are not friends as we were. You know that."
"Are we not? That
is wrong. For my part, I wish you no ill and all good."
"I believe you,
St. John; for I am sure you are incapable of wishing any one ill; but, as I am
your kinswoman, I should desire somewhat more of affection than that sort of
general philanthropy you extend to mere strangers."
"Of course,"
he said. "Your wish is reasonable, and I am far from regarding you as a
stranger."
This, spoken in a cool,
tranquil tone, was mortifying and baffling enough. Had I attended to the
suggestions of pride and ire, I should immediately have left him; but something
worked within me more strongly than those feelings could. I deeply venerated my
cousin’s talent and principle. His friendship was of value to me: to lose it
tried me severely. I would not so soon relinquish the attempt to reconquer it.
"Must we part in
this way, St. John? And when you go to India, will you leave me so, without a
kinder word than you have yet spoken?"
He now turned quite
from the moon and faced me.
"When I go to
India, Jane, will I leave you! What! do you not go to India?"
"You said I could
not unless I married you."
"And you will not
marry me! You adhere to that resolution?"
Reader, do you know, as
I do, what terror those cold people can put into the ice of their questions?
How much of the fall of the avalanche is in their anger? of the breaking up of
the frozen sea in their displeasure?
"No, St. John, I
will not marry you. I adhere to my resolution."
The avalanche had
shaken and slid a little forward, but it did not yet crash down.
"Once more, why
this refusal?" he asked.
"Formerly," I
answered, "because you did not love me; now, I reply, because you almost
hate me. If I were to marry you, you would kill me. You are killing me
now."
His lips and cheeks
turned white -- quite white.
"I should kill you
-- I am killing you? Your words are such as ought not to be used: violent,
unfeminine, and untrue. They betray an unfortunate state of mind: they merit
severe reproof: they would seem inexcusable, but that it is the duty of man to
forgive his fellow even until seventy-and-seven times."
I had finished the business
now. While earnestly wishing to erase from his mind the trace of my former
offence, I had stamped on that tenacious surface another and far deeper
impression: I had burnt it in.
"Now you will
indeed hate me," I said. "It is useless to attempt to conciliate you:
I see I have made an eternal enemy of you."
A fresh wrong did these
words inflict: the worse, because they touched on the truth. That bloodless lip
quivered to a temporary spasm. I knew the steely ire I had whetted. I was
heart-wrung.
"You utterly
misinterpret my words," I said, at once seizing his hand: "I have no
intention to grieve or pain you -- indeed, I have not."
Most bitterly he smiled
-- most decidedly he withdrew his hand from mine. "And now you recall your
promise, and will not go to India at all, I presume?" said he, after a
considerable pause.
"Yes, I will, as
your assistant," I answered.
A very long silence
succeeded. What struggle there was in him between Nature and Grace in this
interval, I cannot tell: only singular gleams scintillated in his eyes, and
strange shadows passed over his face. He spoke at last.
"I before proved
to you the absurdity of a single woman of your age proposing to accompany
abroad a single man of mine. I proved it to you in such terms as, I should have
thought, would have prevented your ever again alluding to the plan. That you
have done so, I regret -- for your sake."
I interrupted him.
Anything like a tangible reproach gave me courage at once. "Keep to common
sense, St. John: you are verging on nonsense. You pretend to be shocked by what
I have said. You are not really shocked: for, with your superior mind, you
cannot be either so dull or so conceited as to misunderstand my meaning. I say
again, I will be your curate, if you like, but never your wife."
Again he turned lividly
pale; but, as before, controlled his passion perfectly. He answered
emphatically but calmly: --
"A female curate,
who is not my wife, would never suit me. With me, then, it seems, you cannot
go: but if you are sincere in your offer, I will, while in town, speak to a
married missionary, whose wife needs a coadjutor. Your own fortune will make
you independent of the Society’s aid; and thus you may still be spared the
dishonour of breaking your promise and deserting the band you engaged to
join."
Now I never had, as the
reader knows, either given any formal promise or entered into any engagement;
and this language was all much too hard and much too despotic for the occasion.
I replied: --
"There is no
dishonour, no breach of promise, no desertion in the case. I am not under the
slightest obligation to go to India, especially with strangers. With you I
would have ventured much, because I admire, confide in, and, as a sister, I
love you; but I am convinced that, go when and with whom I would, I should not
live long in that climate."
"Ah! you are
afraid of yourself," he said, curling his lip.
"I am. God did not
give me my life to throw away; and to do as you wish me would, I begin to
think, be almost equivalent to committing suicide. Moreover, before I
definitely resolve on quitting England, I will know for certain whether I
cannot be of greater use by remaining in it than by leaving it."
"What do you
mean?"
"It would be
fruitless to attempt to explain; but there is a point on which I have long
endured painful doubt, and I can go nowhere till by some means that doubt is
removed."
"I know where your
heart turns and to what it clings. The interest you cherish is lawless and
unconsecrated. Long since you ought to have crushed it: now you should blush to
allude to it. You think of Mr. Rochester?"
It was true. I
confessed it by silence.
"Are you going to
seek Mr. Rochester?"
"I must find out
what is become of him."
"It remains for
me, then," he said, "to remember you in my prayers, and to entreat
God for you, in all earnestness, that you may not indeed become a castaway. I
had thought I recognised in you one of the chosen. But God sees not as man sees:
His will be done."
He opened the gate,
passed through it, and strayed away down the glen. He was soon out of sight.
On re-entering the
parlour, I found Diana standing at the window, looking very thoughtful. Diana
was a great deal taller than I:. she put her hand on my shoulder, and,
stooping, examined my face.
"Jane," she
said, "you are always agitated and pale now. I am sure there is something
the matter. Tell me what business St. John and you have on hands. I have
watched you this half hour from the window; you must forgive my being such a
spy, but for a long time I have fancied I hardly know what. St. John is a
strange being --"
She paused -- I did not
speak: soon she resumed: --
"That brother of
mine cherishes peculiar views of some sort respecting you, I am sure: he has
long distinguished you by a notice and interest he never showed to any one else
-- to what end? I wish he loved you -- does he, Jane?"
I put her cool hand to
my hot forehead; "No, Die, not one whit."
"Then why does he
follow you so with his eyes -- and get you so frequently alone with him, and
keep you so continually at his side? Mary and I had both concluded he wished
you to marry him."
"He does -- he has
asked me to be his wife."
Diana clapped her
hands. "That is just what we hoped and thought! And you will marry him,
Jane, won’t you? And then he will stay in England."
"Far from that,
Diana; his sole idea in proposing to me is to procure a fitting fellow-labourer
in his Indian toils."
"What! He wishes
you to go to India?"
"Yes."
"Madness!"
she exclaimed. "You would not live three months there, I am certain. You
never shall go: you have not consented -- have you, Jane?"
"I have refused to
marry him --"
"And have
consequently displeased him?" she suggested.
"Deeply: he will
never forgive me, I fear: yet I offered to accompany him as his sister."
"It was frantic
folly to do so, Jane. Think of the task you undertook -- one of incessant
fatigue, where fatigue kills even the strong, and you are weak. St. John -- you
know him -- would urge you to impossibilities: with him there would be no
permission to rest during the hot hours; and unfortunately, I have noticed,
whatever he exacts, you force yourself to perform. I am astonished you found
courage to refuse his hand. You do not love him then, Jane?"
"Not as a
husband."
"Yet he is a
handsome fellow."
"And I am so
plain, you see, Die. We should never suit."
"Plain! You? Not
at all. You are much too pretty, as well as too good, to be grilled alive in
Calcutta." And again she earnestly conjured me to give up all thoughts of
going out with her brother.
"I must
indeed," I said; "for when just now I repeated the offer of serving
him for a deacon, he expressed himself shocked at my want of decency. He seemed
to think I had committed an impropriety in proposing to accompany him
unmarried: as if I had not from the first hoped to find in him a brother, and
habitually regarded him as such."
"What makes you
say he does not love you, Jane?"
"You should hear
himself on the subject. He has again and again explained that it is not
himself, but his office he wishes to mate. He has told me I am formed for
labour -- not for love: which is true, no doubt. But, in my opinion, if I am
not formed for love, it follows that I am not formed for marriage. Would it not
be strange, Die, to be chained for life to a man who regarded one but as a
useful tool?"
"Insupportable --
unnatural -- out of the question!"
"And then," I
continued, "though I have only sisterly affection for him now, yet, if forced
to be his wife, I can imagine the possibility of conceiving an inevitable,
strange, torturing kind of love for him, because he is so talented; and there
is often a certain heroic grandeur in his look, manner, and conversation. In
that case, my lot would become unspeakably wretched. He would not want me to
love him; and if I showed the feeling, he would make me sensible that it was a
superfluity, unrequired by him, unbecoming in me. I know he would."
"And yet St. John
is a good man," said Diana.
"He is a good and
a great man; but he forgets, pitilessly, the feelings and claims of little
people, in pursuing his own large views. It is better, therefore, for the
insignificant to keep out of his way, lest, in his progress, he should trample
them down. Here he comes! I will leave you, Diana." And I hastened
upstairs as I saw him entering the garden.
But I was forced to
meet him again at supper. During that meal he appeared just as composed as
usual. I had thought he would hardly speak to me, and I was certain he had
given up the pursuit of his matrimonial scheme: the sequel showed I was
mistaken on both points. He addressed me precisely in his ordinary manner, or
what had, of late, been his ordinary manner; one scrupulously polite. No doubt
he had invoked the help of the Holy Spirit to subdue the anger I had roused in
him, and now believed he had forgiven me once more.
For the evening reading
before prayers, he selected the twenty-first chapter of Revelations. It was at
all times pleasant to listen while from his lips fell the words of the Bible:
never did his fine voice sound at once so sweet and full -- never did his
manner become so impressive in its noble simplicity, as when he delivered the
oracles of God: and to-night that voice took a more solemn tone -- that manner
a more thrilling meaning -- as he sat in the midst of his household circle (the
May moon shining in through the uncurtained window, and rendering almost
unnecessary the light of the candle on the table): as he sat there, bending over
the great old Bible, and described from its page the vision of the new heaven
and the new earth -- told how God would come to dwell with men, how He would
wipe away all tears from their eyes, and promised that there should be no more
death, neither sorrow nor crying, nor any more pain, because the former things
were passed away.
The succeeding words
thrilled me strangely as he spoke them: especially as I felt, by the slight,
indescribable alteration in sound, that in uttering them, his eye had turned on
me.
"He that
overcometh shall inherit all things; and I will be his God, and he shall be my
son. But," was slowly, distinctly read, "the fearful, the
unbelieving, etc., shall have their part in the lake which burneth with fire
and brimstone, which is the second death."
Henceforward, I knew
what fate St. John feared for me.
A calm, subdued
triumph, blent with a longing earnestness, marked his enunciation of the last
glorious verses of that chapter. The reader believed his name was already
written in the Lamb’s book of life, and he yearned after the hour which should
admit him to the city to which the kings of the earth bring their glory and
honour; which has no need of sun or moon to shine in it, because the glory of
God lightens it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.
In the prayer following
the chapter, all his energy gathered -- all his stern zeal woke: he was in deep
earnest, wrestling with God, and resolved on a conquest. He supplicated
strength for the weak-hearted; guidance for wanderers from the fold: a return,
even at the eleventh hour, for those whom the temptations of the world and the
flesh were luring from the narrow path. He asked, he urged, he claimed the boon
of a brand snatched from the burning. Earnestness is ever deeply solemn: first,
as I listened to that prayer, I wondered at his; then, when it continued and
rose, I was touched by it, and at last awed. He felt the greatness and goodness
of his purpose so sincerely: others who heard him plead for it, could not but
feel it too.
The prayer over, we
took leave of him: he was to go at a very early hour in the morning. Diana and
Mary having kissed him, left the room -- in compliance, I think, with a
whispered hint from him: I tendered my hand, and wished him a pleasant journey.
"Thank you, Jane.
As I said, I shall return from Cambridge in a fortnight: that space, then, is
yet left you for reflection. If I listened to human pride, I should say no more
to you of marriage with me; but I listen to my duty, and keep steadily in view
my first aim -- to do all things to the glory of God. My Master was
long-suffering: so will I be. I cannot give you up to perdition as a vessel of
wrath: repent -- resolve; while there is yet time. Remember, we are bid to work
while it is day -- warned that "the night cometh when no man shall
work." Remember the fate of Dives, who had his good things in this life.
God give you strength to choose that better part which shall not be taken from
you!"
He laid his hand on my
head as he uttered the last words. He had spoken earnestly, mildly: his look
was not, indeed, that of a lover beholding his mistress, but it was that of a
pastor recalling his wandering sheep -- or better, of a guardian angel watching
the soul for which he is responsible. All men of talent, whether they be men of
feeling or not; whether they be zealots, or aspirants, or despots -- provided
only they be sincere -- have their sublime moments, when they subdue and rule.
I felt veneration for St. John -- veneration so strong that its impetus thrust
me at once to the point I had so long shunned. I was tempted to cease
struggling with him -- to rush down the torrent of his will into the gulf of
his existence, and there lose my own. I was almost as hard beset by him now as
I had been once before, in a different way, by another. I was a fool both
times. To have yielded then would have been an error of principle; to have
yielded now would have been an error of judgment. So I think at this hour, when
I look back to the crisis through the quiet medium of time: I was unconscious
of folly at the instant.
I stood motionless
under my hierophant’s touch. My refusals were forgotten -- my fears overcome --
my wrestlings paralysed. The Impossible -- i. e. my marriage with St. John --
was fast becoming the Possible. All was changing utterly with a sudden sweep.
Religion called -- Angels beckoned -- God commanded -- life rolled together
like a scroll -- death’s gates opening, showed eternity beyond: it seemed, that
for safety and bliss there, all here might be sacrificed in a second. The dim
room was full of visions.
"Could you decide
now?" asked the missionary. The inquiry was put in gentle tones: he drew
me to him as gently. Oh, that gentleness! how far more potent is it than force!
I could resist St. John’s wrath: I grew pliant as a reed under his kindness.
Yet I knew all the time, if I yielded now, I should not the less be made to
repent, some day, of my former rebellion. His nature was not changed by one
hour of solemn prayer: it was only elevated.
"I could decide if
I were but certain," I answered: "were I but convinced that it is God’s
will I should marry you, I could vow to marry you here and now -- come
afterwards what would!"
"My prayers are
heard!" ejaculated St. John. He pressed his hand firmer on my head, as if
he claimed me: he surrounded me with his arm, almost as if he loved me (I say
almost -- I knew the difference -- for I had felt what it was to be loved; but,
like him, I had now put love out of the question, and thought only of duty). I
contended with my inward dimness of vision, before which clouds yet rolled. I
sincerely, deeply, fervently longed to do what was right; and only that.
"Show me, show me the path!" I entreated of Heaven. I was excited
more than I had ever been; and whether what followed was the effect of
excitement the reader shall judge.
All the house was
still; for I believe all, except St. John and myself, were now retired to rest.
The one candle was dying out: the room was full of moonlight. My heart beat
fast and thick: I heard its throb. Suddenly it stood still to an inexpressible
feeling that thrilled it through, and passed at once to my head and
extremities. The feeling was not like an electric shock, but it was quite as
sharp, as strange, as startling: it acted on my senses as if their utmost
activity hitherto had been but torpor, from which they were now summoned and
forced to wake. They rose expectant: eye and ear waited while the flesh
quivered on my bones.
"What have you
heard? What do you see?" asked St. John. I saw nothing, but I heard a
voice somewhere cry --
"Jane! Jane!
Jane!" nothing more.
"Oh God! what is
it?" I gasped.
I might have said,
"Where is it?" for it did not seem in the room -- nor in the house --
nor in the garden; it did not come out of the air -- nor from under the earth
-- nor from overhead. I had heard it -- where, or whence, for ever impossible
to know! And it was the voice of a human being -- a known, loved,
well-remembered voice -- that of Edward Fairfax Rochester; and it spoke in pain
and woe, wildly, eerily, urgently.
"I am
coming!" I cried. "Wait for me! Oh, I will come!" I flew to the
door and looked into the passage: it was dark. I ran out into the garden: it
was void.
"Where are
you?" I exclaimed.
The hills beyond
Marsh-Glen sent the answer faintly back -- "Where are you?" I
listened. The wind sighed low in the firs: all was moorland loneliness and
midnight hush.
"Down
superstition!" I commented, as that spectre rose up black by the black yew
at the gate. "This is not thy deception, nor thy witchcraft: it is the
work of nature. She was roused, and did -- no miracle -- but her best."
I broke from St. John,
who had followed, and would have detained me. It was my time to assume
ascendency. My powers were in play and in force. I told him to forbear question
or remark; I desired him to leave me: I must and would be alone. He obeyed at
once. Where there is energy to command well enough, obedience never fails. I
mounted to my chamber; locked myself in; fell on my knees; and prayed in my way
-- a different way to St. John’s, but effective in its own fashion. I seemed to
penetrate very near a Mighty Spirit; and my soul rushed out in gratitude at His
feet. I rose from the thanksgiving -- took a resolve -- and lay down, unscared,
enlightened -- eager but for the daylight.
THE daylight came. I
rose at dawn. I busied myself for an hour or two with arranging my things in my
chamber, drawers, and wardrobe, in the order wherein I should wish to leave
them during a brief absence. Meantime, I heard St. John quit his room. He stopped
at my door: I feared he would knock -- no, but a slip of paper was passed under
the door. I took it up. It bore these words --
"You left me too
suddenly last night. Had you stayed but a little longer, you would have laid
your hand on the Christian’s cross and the angel’s crown. I shall expect your
clear decision when I return this day fortnight. Meantime, watch and pray that
you enter not into temptation: the spirit, I trust, is willing, but the flesh,
I see, is weak. I shall pray for you hourly, -- Yours, St. John."
"My spirit,"
I answered mentally, "is willing to do what is right; and my flesh, I
hope, is strong enough to accomplish the will of Heaven, when once that will is
distinctly known to me. At any rate, it shall be strong enough to search --
inquire -- to grope an outlet from this cloud of doubt, and find the open day
of certainty."
It was the first of
June; yet the morning was overcast and chilly: rain beat fast on my casement. I
heard the front-door open, and St. John pass out. Looking through the window, I
saw him traverse the garden. He took the way over the misty moors in the
direction of Whitcross -- there he would meet the coach.
"In a few more
hours I shall succeed you in that track, cousin," thought I: "I too
have a coach to meet at Whitcross. I too have some to see and ask after in
England, before I depart for ever."
It wanted yet two hours
of breakfast-time. I filled the interval in walking softly about my room, and
pondering the visitation which had given my plans their present bent. I
recalled that inward sensation I had experienced: for I could recall it, with
all its unspeakable strangeness. I recalled the voice I had heard; again I
questioned whence it came, as vainly as before: it seemed in me -- not in the
external world. I asked was it a mere nervous impression -- a delusion? I could
not conceive or believe: it was more like an inspiration. The wondrous shock of
feeling had come like the earthquake which shook the foundations of Paul and
Silas’s prison; it had opened the doors of the soul’s cell and loosed its bands
-- it had wakened it out of its sleep, whence it sprang trembling, listening,
aghast; then vibrated thrice a cry on my startled ear, and in my quaking heart
and through my spirit, which neither feared nor shook but exulted as if in joy
over the success of one effort it had been privileged to make, independent of
the cumbrous body.
"Ere many
days," I said, as I terminated my musings, "I will know something of
him whose voice seemed last night to summon me. Letters have proved of no avail
-- personal inquiry shall replace them."
At breakfast I
announced to Diana and Mary that I was going a journey, and should be absent at
least four days.
"Alone,
Jane?" they asked.
"Yes; it was to
see or hear news of a friend about whom I had for some time been uneasy."
They might have said,
as I have no doubt they thought, that they had believed me to be without any
friends save them: for, indeed, I had often said so; but, with their true
natural delicacy, they abstained from comment, except that Diana asked me if I
was sure I was well enough to travel. I looked very pale, she observed. I
replied, that nothing ailed me save anxiety of mind, which I hoped soon to
alleviate.
It was easy to make my
further arrangements; for I was troubled with no inquiries -- no surmises.
Having once explained to them that I could not now be explicit about my plans,
they kindly and wisely acquiesced in the silence with which I pursued them,
according to me the privilege of free action I should under similar
circumstances have accorded them.
I left Moor-House at
three o’clock P. M., and soon after four I stood at the foot of the sign-post
of Whitcross, waiting the arrival of the coach which was to take me to distant
Thornfield. Amidst the silence of those solitary roads and desert hills, I
heard it approach from a great distance. It was the same vehicle whence, a year
ago, I had alighted one summer evening on this very spot -- how desolate, and
hopeless, and objectless! It stopped as I beckoned. I entered -- not now
obliged to part with my whole fortune as the price of its accommodation. Once
more on the road to Thornfield, I felt like the messenger-pigeon flying home.
It was a journey of
six-and-thirty hours. I had set out from Whitcross on a Tuesday afternoon, and
early on the succeeding Thursday morning the coach stopped to water the horses
at a wayside inn, situated in the midst of scenery whose green hedges and large
fields and low pastoral hills (how mild of feature and verdant of hue compared
with the stern north-midland moors of Morton!) met my eye like the lineaments
of a once familiar face. Yes, I knew the character of this landscape: I was
sure we were near my bourne.
"How far is
Thornfield-Hall from here?" I asked of the ostler.
"Just two miles,
Ma’am, across the fields."
"My journey is
closed," I thought to myself. I got out of the coach, gave a box I had
into the ostler’s charge, to be kept till I called for it; paid my fare;
satisfied the coachman, and was going: the brightening day gleamed on the sign
of the inn, and I read in gilt letters, "The Rochester Arms." My
heart leapt up: I was already on my master’s very lands. It fell again: the
thought struck it: --
"Your master
himself may be beyond the British Channel, for aught you know: and then, if he
is at Thornfield-Hall, towards which you hasten, who besides him is there? His
lunatic wife: and you have nothing to do with him: you dare not speak to him or
seek his presence. You have lost your labour -- you had better go no
farther," urged the monitor. "Ask information of the people at the
inn; they can give you all you seek: they can solve your doubts at once. Go up
to that man, and inquire if Mr. Rochester be at home."
The suggestion was
sensible, and yet I could not force self to act on it. I so dreaded a reply
that would crush me with despair. To prolong doubt was to prolong hope. I might
yet once more see the Hall under the ray of her star. There was the stile
before me -- the very fields through which I had hurried, blind, deaf,
distracted with a revengeful fury tracking and scourging me, on the morning I
fled from Thornfield: ere I well knew what course I had resolved to take, I was
in the midst of them. How fast I walked! How I ran sometimes? How I looked
forward to catch the first view of the well-known woods! With what feelings I
welcomed single trees I knew, and familiar glimpses of meadow and hill between
them!
At last the woods rose;
the rookery clustered dark; a loud cawing broke the morning stillness. Strange
delight inspired me: on I hastened. Another field crossed -- a lane threaded --
and there were the courtyard walls -- the back offices: the house itself, the
rookery still hid. "My first view of it shall be in front," I
determined, "where its bold battlements will strike the eye nobly at once,
and where I can single out my master’s very window: perhaps he will be standing
at it -- he rises early: perhaps he is now walking in the orchard, or on the
pavement in front. Could I but see him! -- but a moment? Surely, in that case,
I should not be so mad as to run to him? I cannot tell -- I am not certain. And
if I did -- what then? God bless him! What then? Who would be hurt by my once
more tasting the life his glance can give me? I rave: perhaps at this moment he
is watching the sun rise over the Pyrenees, or on the tideless sea of the
south."
I had coasted along the
lower wall of the orchard -- turned its angle: there was a gate just there,
opening into the meadow, between two stone pillars crowned by stone balls. From
behind one pillar I could peep round quietly at the full front of the mansion.
I advanced my head with precaution, desirous to ascertain if any bedroom
window-blinds were yet drawn up: battlements, windows, long front -- all from
this sheltered station were at my command.
The crows sailing
overhead perhaps watched me while I took this survey. I wonder what they
thought. They must have considered I was very careful and timid at first, and
that gradually I grew very bold and reckless. A peep, and then a long stare;
and then a departure from my niche and a straying out into the meadow; and a
sudden stop full in front of the great mansion, and a protracted, hardy gaze
towards it. "What affectation of diffidence was this at first?" they might
have demanded; "what stupid regardlessness now?"
Hear an illustration,
reader.
A lover finds his
mistress asleep on a mossy bank; he wishes to catch a glimpse of her fair face
without waking her. He steals softly over the grass, careful to make no sound;
he pauses -- fancying she has stirred: he withdraws; not for worlds would he be
seen. All is still: he again advances: he bends above her; a light veil rests
on her features: he lifts it, bends lower; now his eyes anticipate the vision
of beauty -- warm, and blooming, and lovely, in rest. How hurried was their
first glance! But how they fix! How he starts! How he suddenly and vehemently
clasps in both arms the form he dared not, a moment since, touch with his
finger! How he calls aloud a name, and drops his burden, and gazes on it
wildly! He thus grasps and cries, and gazes, because he no longer fears to
waken by any sound he can utter -- by any movement he can make. He thought his
love slept sweetly: he finds she is stone dead.
I looked with timorous
joy towards a stately house: I saw a blackened ruin.
No need to cower behind
a gate-post, indeed! -- to peep up at chamber lattices, fearing life was astir
behind them! No need to listen for doors opening -- to fancy steps on the
pavement or the gravel-walk! The lawn, the grounds were trodden and waste: the
portal yawned void. The front was, as I had once seen it in a dream, but a
shell-like wall, very high and very fragile looking, perforated with paneless
windows: no roof, no battlements, no chimneys: all had crashed in.
And there was the
silence of death about it: the solitude of a lonesome wild. No wonder that
letters addressed to people here had never received an answer: as well despatch
epistles to a vault in a church aisle. The grim blackness of the stones told by
what fate the Hall had fallen -- by conflagration: but how kindled? What story
belonged to this disaster? What loss, besides mortar and marble and woodwork
had followed upon it? Had life been wrecked as well as property? If so, whose?
Dreadful question: there was no one here to answer it -- not even dumb sign,
mute token.
In wandering round the
shattered walls and through the devastated interior, I gathered evidence that
the calamity was not of late occurrence. Winter snows, I thought, had drifted
through that void arch; winter rains beaten in at those hollow casements; for,
amidst the drenched piles of rubbish, spring had cherished vegetation: grass
and weed grew here and there between the stones and fallen rafters. And oh!
where meantime was the hapless owner of this wreck? In what land? Under what
auspices? My eye involuntarily wandered to the grey church tower near the
gates, and I asked, "Is he with Damer de Rochester, sharing the shelter of
his narrow marble house?"
Some answer must be had
to these questions. I could find it nowhere but at the inn, and thither, ere
long, I returned. The host himself brought my breakfast into the parlour. I
requested him to shut the door and sit down: I had some questions to ask him. But
when he complied, I scarcely knew how to begin; such horror had I of the
possible answers. And yet the spectacle of desolation I had just left prepared
me in a measure for a tale of misery. The host was a respectable-looking,
middle-aged man.
"You know
Thornfield-Hall, of course?" I managed to say at last.
"Yes, Ma’am; I
lived there once."
"Did you?"
Not in my time, I thought: you are a stranger to me.
"I was the late
Mr. Rochester’s butler," he added.
The late! I seem to
have received, with full force, the blow I had been trying to evade.
"The late!" I
gasped. "Is he dead?"
"I mean the
present gentleman, Mr. Edward’s father," he explained. I breathed again:
my blood resumed its flow. Fully assured by these words that Mr. Edward -- my
Mr. Rochester (God bless him, wherever he was!) -- was at least alive: was, in
short, "the present gentleman." Gladdening words! It seemed I could
hear all that was to come -- whatever the disclosures might be -- with
comparative tranquillity. Since he was not in the grave, I could bear, I
thought, to learn that he was at the Antipodes.
"Is Mr. Rochester
living at Thornfield-Hall now?" I asked, knowing, of course, what the
answer would be, but yet desirous of deferring the direct question as to where
he really was.
"No Ma’am -- oh,
no! No one is living there. I suppose you are a stranger in these parts, or you
would have heard what happened last autumn, -- Thornfield-Hall is quite a ruin:
it was burnt down just about harvest time. A dreadful calamity! such an immense
quantity of valuable property destroyed: hardly any of the furniture could be
saved. The fire broke out at dead of night, and before the engines arrived from
Millcote, the building was one mass of flame. It was a terrible spectacle: I
witnessed it myself."
"At dead of
night!" I muttered. Yes, that was ever the hour of fatality at Thornfield.
"Was it known how it originated?" I demanded.
"They guessed, Ma’am:
they guessed. Indeed, I should say it was ascertained beyond a doubt. You are
not perhaps aware," he continued, edging his chair a little nearer the
table, and speaking low, "that there was a lady, -- a -- a lunatic, kept
in the house?"
"I have heard
something of it."
"She was kept in
very close confinement, Ma’am; people even for some years was not absolutely
certain of her existence. No one saw her: they only knew by rumour that such a
person was at the Hall; and who or what she was it was difficult to conjecture.
They said Mr. Edward had brought her from abroad, and some believed she had
been his mistress. But a queer thing happened a year since -- a very queer
thing."
I feared now to hear my
own story. I endeavoured to recall him to the main fact.
"And this
lady?"
"This lady, Ma’am,"
he answered, "turned out to be Mr. Rochester’s wife! The discovery was
brought about in the strangest way. There was a young lady, a governess at the
Hall, that Mr. Rochester fell in --"
"But the
fire," I suggested.
"I’m coming to
that, Ma’am -- that Mr. Edward fell in love with. The servants say they never
saw anybody so much in love as he was: he was after her continually. They used
to watch him -- servants will, you know, Ma’am -- and he set store on her past
everything: for all, nobody but him thought her so very handsome. She was a
little small thing, they say, almost like a child. I never saw her myself; but
I’ve heard Leah, the housemaid, tell of her. Leah liked her well enough. Mr.
Rochester was about forty, and this governess not twenty; and you see, when
gentlemen of his age fall in love with girls, they are often like as if they
were bewitched. Well, he would marry her."
"You shall tell me
this part of the story another time," I said; "but now I have a
particular reason for wishing to hear all about the fire. Was it suspected that
this lunatic, Mrs. Rochester, had any hand in it?"
"You’ve hit it, Ma’am:
it’s quite certain that it was her, and nobody but her, that set it going. She
had a woman to take care of her called Mrs. Poole -- an able woman in her line,
and very trustworthy, but for one fault -- a fault common to a deal of them
nurses and matrons -- she kept a private bottle of gin by her, and now and then
took a drop over-much. It is excusable, for she had a hard life of it: but
still it was dangerous; for when Mrs. Poole was fast asleep after the gin and
water, the mad lady, who was as cunning as a witch, would take the keys out of
her pocket, let herself out of her chamber, and go roaming about the house,
doing any wild mischief that came into her head. They say she had nearly burnt
her husband in his bed once: but I don’t know about that. However, on this
night, she set fire first to the hangings of the room next her own, and then
she got down to a lower Storey, and made her way to the chamber that had been
the governess’s -- (she was like as if she knew somehow how matters had gone
on, and had a spite at her) -- and she kindled the bed there; but there was
nobody sleeping in it, fortunately. The governess had run away two months
before; and for all Mr. Rochester sought her as if she had been the most
precious thing he had in the world, he never could hear a word of her; and he
grew savage -- quite savage on his disappointment: he never was a wild man, but
he got dangerous after he lost her. He would be alone, too. He sent Mrs. Fairfax,
the housekeeper, away to her friends at a distance; but he did it handsomely,
for he settled an annuity on her for life: and she deserved it -- she was a
very good woman. Miss Adèle, a ward he had, was put to school. He broke off
acquaintance with all the gentry, and shut himself up like a hermit at the
Hall."
"What! did he not
leave England?"
"Leave England?
Bless you, no! He would not cross the door-stones of the house, except at
night, when he walked just like a ghost about the grounds and in the orchard as
if he had lost his senses -- which it is my opinion he had; for a more
spirited, bolder, keener gentleman than he was before that midge of a governess
crossed him, you never saw, Ma’am. He was not a man given to wine, or cards, or
racing, as some are, and he was not so very handsome; but he had a courage and
a will of his own, if ever man had. I knew him from a boy, you see: and for my
part, I have often wished that Miss Eyre had been sunk in the sea before she
came to Thornfield-Hall."
"Then Mr.
Rochester was at home when the fire broke out?"
"Yes, indeed was
he; and he went up to the attics when all was burning above and below, and got
the servants out of their beds and helped them down himself, and went back to
get his mad wife out of her cell. And then they called out to him that she was
on the roof, where she was standing, waving her arms, above the battlements,
and shouting out till they could hear her a mile off: I saw her and heard her
with my own eyes. She was a big woman, and had long black hair: we could see it
streaming against the flames as she stood. I witnessed, and several more
witnessed, Mr. Rochester ascend through the skylight on to the roof; we heard
him call "Bertha!" We saw him approach her; and then, Ma’am, she
yelled and gave a spring, and the next minute she lay smashed on the
pavement."
"Dead?"
"Dead! Ay, dead as
the stones on which her brains and blood were scattered."
"Good God!"
"You may well say
so, Ma’am: it was frightful!"
He shuddered.
"And
afterwards?" I urged.
"Well, Ma’am,
afterwards the house was burnt to the ground: there are only some bits of walls
standing now."
"Were any other
lives lost?"
"No -- perhaps it
would have been better if there had."
"What do you
mean?"
"Poor Mr.
Edward!" he ejaculated, "I little thought ever to have seen it? Some
say it was a just judgment on him for keeping his first marriage secret, and
wanting to take another wife while he had one living: but I pity him, for my
part."
"You said he was
alive?" I exclaimed.
"Yes, yes: he is
alive; but many think he had better be dead."
"Why? How?"
My blood was again running cold. "Where is he?" I demanded. "Is
he in England?"
"Ay -- ay -- he’s
in England; he can’t get out of England, I fancy -- he’s a fixture now."
What agony was this!
And the man seemed resolved to protract it.
"He is
stone-blind," he said at last. "Yes -- he is stone-blind, is Mr.
Edward."
I had dreaded worse. I
had dreaded he was mad. I summoned strength to ask what had caused this
calamity.
"It was all his
own courage, and a body may say, his kindness, in a way, Ma’am: he wouldn’t
leave the house till every one else was out before him. As he came down the
great staircase at last, after Mrs. Rochester had flung herself from the
battlements, there was a great crash -- all fell. He was taken out from under
the ruins, alive, but sadly hurt: a beam had fallen in such a way as to protect
him partly; but one eye was knocked out, and one hand so crushed that Mr.
Carter, the surgeon, had to amputate it directly. The other eye inflamed: he
lost the sight of that also. He is now helpless, indeed -- blind and a
cripple."
"Where is he?
Where does he now live?"
"At Ferndean, a
manor-house on a farm he has, about thirty miles off: quite a desolate
spot."
"Who is with
him?"
"Old John and his
wife: he would have none else. He is quite broken down, they say."
"Have you any sort
of conveyance?"
"We have a chaise,
Ma’am, a very handsome chaise."
"Let it be got
ready instantly; and if your post-boy can drive me to Ferndean before dark this
day, I’ll pay both you and him twice the hire you usually demand."
THE manor-house of
Ferndean was a building of considerable antiquity, moderate size, and no
architectural pretensions, deep buried in a wood. I had heard of it before. Mr.
Rochester often spoke of it, and sometimes went there. His father had purchased
the estate for the sake of the game covers. He would have let the house, but
could find no tenant, in consequence of its ineligible and insalubrious site.
Ferndean then remained uninhabited and unfurnished, with the exception of some
two or three rooms fitted up for the accommodation of the squire when he went
there in the season to shoot.
To this house I came
just ere dark on an evening marked by the characteristics of sad sky, cold
gale, and continued small penetrating rain. The last mile I performed on foot,
having dismissed the chaise and driver with the double remuneration I had
promised. Even when within a very short distance of the manor-house, you could
see nothing of it, so thick and dark grew the timber of the gloomy wood about
it. Iron gates between granite pillars showed me where to enter, and passing
through them, I found myself at once in the twilight of close-ranked trees.
There was a grass-grown track descending the forest aisle between hoar and
knotty shafts and under branched arches. I followed it, expecting soon to reach
the dwelling; but it stretched on and on, it wound far and farther: no sign of
habitation or grounds was visible.
I thought I had taken a
wrong direction and lost my way. The darkness of natural as well as of sylvan
dusk gathered over me. I looked round in search of another road. There was
none: all was interwoven stem, columnar trunk, dense summer foliage -- no
opening anywhere.
I proceeded: at last my
way opened, the trees thinned a little; presently I beheld a railing, then the
house -- scarce, by this dim light, distinguishable from the trees, so dank and
green were its decaying walls. Entering a portal, fastened only by a latch, I
stood amidst a space of enclosed ground, from which the wood swept away in a
semicircle. There were no flowers, no garden-beds; only a broad gravel-walk
girdling a grass-plat, and this set in the heavy frame of the forest. The house
presented two pointed gables in its front; the windows were latticed and
narrow: the front-door was narrow too, one step led up to it. The whole looked,
as the host of the Rochester Arms had said, "quite a desolate spot."
It was as still as a church on a week-day: the pattering rain on the forest
leaves was the only sound audible in its vicinage.
"Can there be life
here?" I asked.
Yes, life of some kind
there was; for I heard a movement -- that narrow front-door was unclosing, and
some shape was about to issue from the grange.
It opened slowly: a
figure came out into the twilight and stood on the step; a man without a hat:
he stretched forth his hand as if to feel whether it rained. Dusk as it was, I
had recognised him -- it was my master, Edward Fairfax Rochester, and no other.
I stayed my step,
almost my breath, and stood to watch him -- to examine him, myself unseen, and
alas! to him invisible. It was a sudden meeting, and one in which rapture was
kept well in check by pain. I had no difficulty in restraining my voice from
exclamation, my step from hasty advance.
His form was of the
same strong and stalwart contour as ever: his port was still erect, his hair
was still raven black; nor were his features altered or sunk: not in one year’s
space, by any sorrow, could his athletic strength be quelled or his vigorous
prime blighted. But in his countenance I saw a change: that looked desperate
and brooding -- that reminded me of some wronged and fettered wild beast or
bird, dangerous to approach in his sullen woe. The caged eagle, whose
gold-ringed eyes cruelty has extinguished, might look as looked that sightless
Samson.
And, reader, do you
think I feared him in his blind ferocity? -- if you do, you little know me. A
soft hope blent with my sorrow that soon I should dare to drop a kiss on that
brow of rock, and on those lips so sternly sealed beneath it: but not yet. I
would not accost him yet.
He descended the one
step, and advanced slowly and gropingly towards the grass-plat. Where was his
daring stride now? Then he paused, as if he knew not which way to turn. He
lifted his hand and opened his eyelids; gazed blank, and with a straining
effort, on the sky, and toward the amphitheatre of trees: one saw that all to
him was void darkness. He stretched his right hand (the left arm, the mutilated
one, he kept hidden in his bosom); he seemed to wish by touch to gain an idea
of what lay around him: he met but vacancy still; for the trees were some yards
off where he stood. He relinquished the endeavour, folded his arms, and stood
quiet and mute in the rain, now falling fast on his uncovered head. At this
moment John approached him from some quarter.
"Will you take my
arm, Sir?" he said; "there is a heavy shower coming on: had you not
better go in?"
"Let me
alone," was the answer.
John withdrew without
having observed me. Mr. Rochester now tried to walk about: vainly, -- all was
too uncertain. He groped his way back to the house, and, re-entering it, closed
the door.
I now drew near and
knocked: John’s wife opened for me. "Mary," I said, "how are
you?"
She started as if she
had seen a ghost: I calmed her. To her hurried "Is it really you, miss,
come at this late hour to this lonely place?" I answered by taking her
hand; and then I followed her into the kitchen, where John now sat by a good
fire. I explained to them, in a few words, that I had heard all which had
happened since I left Thornfield, and that I was come to see Mr. Rochester. I
asked John to go down to the turnpike-house, where I had dismissed the chaise,
and bring my trunk, which I had left there: and then, while I removed my bonnet
and shawl, I questioned Mary as to whether I could be accommodated at the Manor
House for the night; and finding that arrangements to that effect, though
difficult, would not be impossible, I informed her I should stay. just at this
moment the parlour-bell rang.
"When you go
in," said I, "tell your master that a person wishes to speak to him,
but do not give my name."
"I don’t think he
will see you," she answered; "he refuses everybody."
When she returned, I
inquired what he had said.
"You are to send
in your name and your business," she replied. She then proceeded to fill a
glass with water, and place it on a tray, together with candles.
"Is that what he
rang for?" I asked.
"Yes: he always
has candles brought in at dark, though he is blind."
"Give the tray to
me; I will carry it in."
I took it from her
hand: she pointed me out the parlour door. The tray shook as I held it; the
water spilt from the glass; my heart struck my ribs loud and fast. Mary opened
the door for me, and shut it behind me.
This parlour looked
gloomy: a neglected handful of fire burnt low in the grate; and, leaning over
it, with his head supported against the high, old-fashioned mantelpiece,
appeared the blind tenant of the room. His old dog, Pilot, lay on one side,
removed out of the way, and coiled up as if afraid of being inadvertently
trodden upon. Pilot pricked up his ears when I came in: then he jumped up with
a yelp and a whine, and bounded towards me: he almost knocked the tray from my
hands. I set it on the table; then patted him, and said softly, "Lie
down!" Mr. Rochester turned mechanically to see what the commotion was:
but as he saw nothing, he returned and sighed.
"Give me the
water, Mary," he said.
I approached him with
the now only half-filled glass; Pilot followed me, still excited.
"What is the
matter?" he inquired.
"Down,
Pilot!" I again said. He checked the water on its way to his lips, and
seemed to listen: he drank, and put the glass down. "This is you, Mary, is
it not?"
"Mary is in the
kitchen," I answered.
He put out his hand with
a quick gesture, but not seeing where I stood, he did not touch me. "Who
is this? Who is this?" he demanded, trying, as it seemed, to see with
those sightless eyes -- unavailing and distressing attempt! "Answer me --
speak again!" he ordered, imperiously and aloud.
"Will you have a
little more water, Sir? I spilt half of what was in the glass," I said.
"Who is it? What
is it? Who speaks?"
"Pilot knows me,
and John and Mary know I am here. I came only this evening," I answered.
"Great God! --
what delusion has come over me? What sweet madness has seized me?"
"No delusion -- no
madness: your mind, Sir, is too strong for delusion, your health too sound for
frenzy."
"And where is the
speaker? Is it only a voice? Oh! I cannot see, but I must feel, or my heart
will stop and my brain burst. Whatever -- whoever you are -- be perceptible to
the touch or I cannot live!"
He groped; I arrested
his wandering hand, and prisoned it in both mine.
"Her very
fingers!" he cried; "her small, slight fingers! If so there must be
more of her."
The muscular hand broke
from my custody; my arm was seized, my shoulder -- neck -- waist -- I was
entwined and gathered to him.
"Is it Jane? What
is it? This is her shape -- this is her size --"
"And this her
voice," I added. "She is all here: her heart, too. God bless you,
Sir! I am glad to be so near you again."
"Jane Eyre! --
Jane Eyre," was all he said.
"My dear
master," I answered, "I am Jane Eyre: I have found you out -- I am
come back to you."
"In truth? -- in
the flesh? My living Jane?"
"You touch me,
Sir, -- you hold me, and fast enough: I am not cold like a corpse, nor vacant
like air, am I?"
"My living
darling! These are certainly her limbs, and these her features; but I cannot be
so blest, after all my misery. It is a dream; such dreams as I have had at
night when I have clasped her once more to my heart, as I do now; and kissed
her, as thus -- and felt that she loved me, and trusted that she would not
leave me."
"Which I never will,
Sir, from this day."
"Never will, says
the vision? But I always woke and found it an empty mockery; and I was desolate
and abandoned -- my life dark, lonely, hopeless -- my soul athirst and
forbidden to drink -- my heart famished and never to be fed. Gentle, soft
dream, nestling in my arms now, you will fly, too, as your sisters have all
fled before you: but kiss me before you go -- embrace me, Jane."
"There, Sir -- and
there!"
I pressed my lips to
his once brilliant and now rayless eyes -- I swept his hair from his brow, and
kissed that too. He suddenly seemed to arouse himself: the conviction of the
reality of all this seized him.
"It is you -- is
it, Jane? You are come back to me then?"
"I am."
"And you do not
lie dead in some ditch under some stream? And you are not a pining outcast
amongst strangers?"
"No, Sir! I am an
independent woman now."
"Independent! What
do you mean, Jane?"
"My uncle in
Madeira is dead, and he left me five thousand pounds."
"Ah! this is
practical -- this is real!" he cried: "I should never dream that.
Besides, there is that peculiar voice of hers, so animating and piquant, as
well as soft: it cheers my withered heart; it puts life into it. -- What,
Janet! Are you an independent woman? A rich woman?"
"Quite rich, Sir.
If you won’t let me live with you, I can build a house of my own close up to
your door, and you may come and sit in my parlour when you want company of an
evening."
"But as you are
rich, Jane, you have now, no doubt, friends who will look after you, and not
suffer you to devote yourself to a blind lameter like me?"
"I told you I am
independent, Sir, as well as rich: I am my own mistress."
"And you will stay
with me?"
"Certainly --
unless you object. I will be your neighbour, your nurse, your housekeeper. I
find you lonely: I will be your companion -- to read to you, to walk with you,
to sit with you, to wait on you, to be eyes and hands to you. Cease to look so melancholy,
my dear master; you shall not be left desolate, so long as I live."
He replied not: he
seemed serious -- abstracted; he sighed; he half-opened his lips as if to
speak: he closed them again. I felt a little embarrassed. Perhaps I had too
rashly overleaped conventionalities; and he, like St. John, saw impropriety in
my inconsiderateness. I had indeed made my proposal from the idea that he
wished and would ask me to be his wife: an expectation, not the less certain
because unexpressed, had buoyed me up, that he would claim me at once as his
own. But no hint to that effect escaping him and his countenance becoming more
overcast, I suddenly remembered that I might have been all wrong, and was
perhaps playing the fool unwittingly; and I began gently to withdraw myself
from his arms -- but he eagerly snatched me closer.
"No -- no -- Jane;
you must not go. No -- I have touched you, heard you, felt the comfort of your
presence -- the sweetness of your consolation: I cannot give up these joys. I
have little left in myself -- I must have you. The world may laugh -- may call
me absurd, selfish -- but it does not signify. My very soul demands you: it
will be satisfied, or it will take deadly vengeance on its frame."
"Well, Sir, I will
stay with you: I have said so."
"Yes -- but you
understand one thing by staying with me; and I understand another. You,
perhaps, could make up your mind to be about my hand and chair -- to wait on me
as a kind little nurse (for you have an affectionate heart and a generous
spirit, which prompt you to make sacrifices for those you pity), and that ought
to suffice for me no doubt. I suppose I should now entertain none but fatherly
feelings for you: do you think so? Come -- tell me."
"I will think what
you like, Sir: I am content to be only your nurse, if you think it
better."
"But you cannot
always be my nurse, Janet: you are young -- you must marry one day."
"I don’t care
about being married."
"You should care,
Janet: if I were what I once was, I would try to make you care -- but -- a
sightless block!"
He relapsed again into
gloom. I, on the contrary, became more cheerful, and took fresh courage: these
last words gave me an insight as to where the difficulty lay; and as it was no
difficulty with me, I felt quite relieved from my previous embarrassment. I
resumed a livelier vein of conversation.
"It is time some
one undertook to rehumanise you," said I, parting his thick and long uncut
locks; "for I see you are being metamorphosed into a lion, or something of
that sort. You have a ‘faux air’ of Nebuchadnezzar in the fields about you,
that is certain: your hair reminds me of eagles’ feathers; whether your nails
are grown like birds’ claws or not, I have not yet noticed."
"On this arm, I
have neither hand nor nails," he said, drawing the mutilated limb from his
breast, and showing it to me. "It is a mere stump -- a ghastly sight! Don’t
you think so, Jane?"
"It is a pity to
see it; and a pity to see your eyes -- and the scar of fire on your forehead:
and the worst of it is, one is in danger of loving you too well for all this;
and making too much of you."
"I thought you
would be revolted, Jane, when you saw my arm, and my cicatrised visage."
"Did you? Don’t
tell me so -- lest I should say something disparaging to your judgment. Now,
let me leave you an instant, to make a better fire, and have the hearth swept
up. Can you tell when there is a good fire?"
"Yes; with the
right eye I see a glow -- a ruddy haze."
"And you see the
candles?"
"Very dimly --
each is a luminous cloud."
"Can you see
me?"
"No, my fairy: but
I am only too thankful to hear and feel you."
"When do you take
supper?"
"I never take
supper."
"But you shall
have some to-night. I am hungry: so are you, I daresay, only you forget."
Summoning Mary, I soon
had the room in more cheerful order: I prepared him, likewise, a comfortable
repast. My spirits were excited, and with pleasure and ease I talked to him
during supper, and for a long time after. There was no harassing restraint, no
repressing of glee and vivacity with him; for with him I was at perfect ease,
because I knew I suited him; all I said or did seemed either to console or
revive him. Delightful consciousness! It brought to life and light my whole
nature: in his presence I thoroughly lived; and he lived in mine. Blind as he
was, smiles played over his face, joy dawned on his forehead: his lineaments
softened and warmed.
After supper, he began
to ask me many questions, of where I had been, what I had been doing, how I had
found him out; but I gave him only very partial replies: it was too late to
enter into particulars that night. Besides, I wished to touch no deep-thrilling
chord -- to open no fresh well of emotion in his heart: my sole present aim was
to cheer him. Cheered, as I have said, he was: and yet but by fits. If a moment’s
silence broke the conversation, he would turn restless, touch me, then say,
"Jane."
"You are
altogether a human being, Janet? You are certain of that?"
"I conscientiously
believe so, Mr. Rochester."
"Yet how, on this
dark and doleful evening, could you so suddenly rise on my lone hearth? I
stretched my hand to take a glass of water from a hireling, and it was given me
by you: I asked a question, expecting John’s wife to answer me, and your voice
spoke at my ear."
"Because I had
come in, in Mary’s stead, with the tray."
"And there is
enchantment in the very hour I am now spending with you. Who can tell what a
dark, dreary, hopeless life I have dragged on for months past? Doing nothing,
expecting nothing; merging night in day; feeling but the sensation of cold when
I let the fire go out, of hunger when I forgot to eat: and then a ceaseless
sorrow, and, at times, a very delirium of desire to behold my Jane again. Yes:
for her restoration I longed, far more than for that of my lost sight. How can
it be that Jane is with me, and says she loves me? Will she not depart as
suddenly as she came? To-morrow, I fear I shall find her no more."
A commonplace,
practical reply, out of the train of his own disturbed ideas, was, I was sure,
the best and most reassuring for him in this frame of mind. I passed my finger
over his eyebrows, and remarked that they were scorched, and that I would apply
something which would make them grow as broad and black as ever.
"Where is the use
of doing me good in any way, beneficent spirit, when, at some fatal moment, you
will again desert me -- passing like a shadow, whither and how to me unknown,
and for me remaining afterwards undiscoverable?"
"Have you a
pocket-comb about you, Sir?"
"What for,
Jane?"
"Just to comb out
this shaggy black mane. I find you rather alarming, when I examine you close at
hand: you talk of my being a fairy, but I am sure, you are more like a
brownie."
"Am I hideous,
Jane?"
"Very, Sir: you
always were, you know."
"Humph! The
wickedness has not been taken out of you, wherever you have sojourned."
"Yet I have been
with good people; far better than you: a hundred times better people; possessed
of ideas and views you never entertained in your life: quite more refined and
exalted."
"Who the deuce
have you been with?"
"If you twist in
that way you will make me pull the hair out of your head; and then I think you
will cease to entertain doubts of my substantiality."
"Who have you been
with, Jane?"
"You shall not get
it out of me to-night, Sir; you must wait till to-morrow; to leave my tale half
told, will, you know, be a sort of security that I shall appear at your
breakfast table to finish it. By-the-bye, I must mind not to rise on your
hearth with only a glass of water then: I must bring an egg at the least, to
say nothing of fried ham."
"You mocking
changeling -- fairy-born and human-bred! You make me feel as I have not felt
these twelve months. If Saul could have had you for his David, the evil spirit
would have been exorcised without the aid of the harp."
"There, Sir, you
are redd up and made decent. Now I’ll leave you: I have been travelling these
last three days, and I believe I am tired. Good night."
"Just one word,
Jane: were there only ladies in the house where you have been?"
I laughed and made my
escape, still laughing as I ran upstairs. "A good idea!" I thought
with glee. "I see I have the means of fretting him out of his melancholy
for some time to come."
Very early the next
morning I heard him up and astir, wandering from one room to another. As soon
as Mary came down I heard the question: "Is Miss Eyre here?" Then:
"Which room did you put her into? Was it dry? Is she up? Go and ask if she
wants anything; and when she will come down."
I came down as soon as
I thought there was a prospect of breakfast. Entering the room very softly, I
had a view of him before he discovered my presence. It was mournful, indeed, to
witness the subjugation of that vigorous spirit to a corporeal infirmity. He
sat in his chair, -- still, but not at rest: expectant evidently; the lines of
now habitual sadness marking his strong features. His countenance reminded one
of a lamp quenched, waiting to be relit -- and alas! it was not himself that
could now kindle the lustre of animated expression: he was dependent on another
for that office! I had meant to be gay and careless, but the powerlessness of
the strong man touched my heart to the quick: still I accosted him with what
vivacity I could: --
"It is a bright,
sunny morning, Sir," I said. "The rain is over and gone, and there is
a tender shining after it: you shall have a walk soon."
I had wakened the glow:
his features beamed.
"Oh, you are
indeed there, my skylark! Come to me. You are not gone: not vanished? I heard
one of your kind an hour ago, singing high over the wood: but its song had no
music for me, any more than the rising sun had rays. All the melody on earth is
concentrated in my Jane’s tongue to my ear (I am glad it is not naturally a
silent one): all the sunshine I can feel is in her presence."
The water stood in my
eyes to hear this avowal of his dependence; just as if a royal eagle, chained
to a perch, should be forced to entreat a sparrow to become its purveyor. But I
would not be lachrymose: I dashed off the salt drops, and busied myself with
preparing breakfast.
Most of the morning was
spent in the open air. I led him out of the wet and wild wood into some
cheerful fields: I described to him how brilliantly green they were; how the
flowers and hedges looked refreshed; how sparklingly blue was the sky. I sought
a seat for him in a hidden and lovely spot, a dry stump of a tree; nor did I
refuse to let him, when seated, place me on his knee. Why should I, when both
he and I were happier near than apart? Pilot lay beside us: all was quiet. He
broke out suddenly while clasping me in his arms: --
"Cruel, cruel
deserter! Oh, Jane, what did I feel when I discovered you had fled from
Thornfield, and when I could nowhere find you; and, after examining your
apartment, ascertained that you had taken no money, nor anything which could
serve as an equivalent! A pearl necklace I had given you lay untouched in its
little casket; your trunks were left corded and locked as they had been
prepared for the bridal tour. What could my darling do, I asked, left destitute
and penniless? And what did she do? Let me hear now."
Thus urged, I began the
narrative of my experience for the last year. I softened considerably what
related to the three days of wandering and starvation, because to have told him
all would have been to inflict unnecessary pain: the little I did say lacerated
his faithful heart deeper than I wished.
I should not have left
him thus, he said, without any means of making my way: I should have told him
my intention. I should have confided in him: he would never have forced me to
be his mistress. Violent as he had seemed in his despair, he, in truth, loved
me far too well and too tenderly to constitute himself my tyrant: he would have
given me half his fortune, without demanding so much as a kiss in return,
rather than I should have flung myself friendless on the wide world. I had
endured, he was certain, more than I had confessed to him.
"Well, whatever my
sufferings had been, they were very short," I answered: and then I
proceeded to tell him how I had been received at Moor-House; how I had obtained
the office of schoolmistress, etc. The accession of fortune, the discovery of
my relations, followed in due order. Of course, St. John Rivers’ name came in
frequently in the progress of my tale. When I had done, that name was
immediately taken up.
"This St. John,
then, is your cousin?"
"Yes."
"You have spoken
of him often: do you like him?"
"He was a very
good man, Sir; I could not help liking him."
"A good man. Does
that mean a respectable well-conducted man of fifty? Or what does it
mean?"
"St. John was only
twenty-nine, Sir."
"‘Jeune encore,’
as the French say. Is he a person of low stature, phlegmatic, and plain? A
person whose goodness consists rather in his guiltlessness of vice, than in his
prowess in virtue?"
"He is untiringly
active. Great and exalted deeds are what he lives to perform."
"But his brain?
That is probably rather soft? He means well: but you shrug your shoulders to
hear him talk?"
"He talks little,
Sir: what he does say is ever to the point. His brain is first-rate, I should
think not impressible, but vigorous."
"Is he an able
man, then?"
"Truly able."
"A thoroughly
educated man?"
"St. John is an
accomplished and profound scholar."
"His manners, I
think, you said are not to your taste? -- priggish and parsonic?"
"I never mentioned
his manners; but, unless I had a very bad taste, they must suit it; they are
polished, calm, and gentlemanlike."
"His appearance,
-- I forget what description you gave of his appearance; -- a sort of raw
curate, half strangled with his white neckcloth, and stilted up on his
thick-soled highlows, eh?"
"St. John dresses
well. He is a handsome man: tall, fair, with blue eyes, and a Grecian
profile."
(Aside.) "Damn
him!" -- (To me.) "Did you like him, Jane?"
"Yes, Mr. Rochester,
I liked him: but you asked me that before."
I perceived, of course,
the drift of my interlocutor. Jealousy had got hold of him: she stung him; but
the sting was salutary: it gave him respite from the gnawing fang of
melancholy. I would not, therefore, immediately charm the snake.
"Perhaps you would
rather not sit any longer on my knee, Miss Eyre?" was the next somewhat
unexpected observation.
"Why not, Mr.
Rochester?"
"The picture you
have just drawn is suggestive of a rather too overwhelming contrast. Your words
have delineated very prettily a graceful Apollo: he is present to your
imagination, -- tall, fair, blue-eyed, and with a Grecian profile. Your eyes
dwell on a Vulcan, -- a real blacksmith, brown, broad-shouldered: and blind and
lame into the bargain."
"I never thought
of it, before; but you certainly are rather like Vulcan, Sir."
"Well, -- you can
leave me, Ma’am: but before you go" (and he retained me by a firmer grasp
than ever), "you will be pleased just to answer me a question or
two." He paused.
"What questions,
Mr. Rochester?"
Then followed this
cross-examination.
"St. John made you
schoolmistress of Morton before he knew you were his cousin?"
"Yes."
"You would often
see him? He would visit the school sometimes?"
"Daily."
"He would approve
of your plans, Jane? I know they would be clever, for you are a talented
creature!"
"He approved of
them -- yes."
"He would discover
many things in you he could not have expected to find? Some of your
accomplishments are not ordinary."
"I don’t know
about that."
"You had a little
cottage near the school, you say: did he ever come there to see you?"
"Now and
then."
"Of an
evening?"
"Once or
twice."
A pause.
"How long did you
reside with him and his sisters after the cousinship was discovered?"
"Five
months."
"Did Rivers spend
much time with the ladies of his family?"
"Yes; the back
parlour was both his study and ours: he sat near the window, and we by the
table."
"Did he study
much?"
"A good
deal."
"What?"
"Hindostanee."
"And what did you
do meantime?"
"I learnt German,
at first."
"Did he teach
you?"
"He did not
understand German."
"Did he teach you
nothing?"
"A little
Hindostanee."
"Rivers taught you
Hindostanee?"
"Yes, Sir."
"And his sisters
also?"
"No."
"Only you?"
"Only me."
"Did you ask to
learn?"
"No."
"He wished to
teach you?"
"Yes."
A second pause.
"Why did he wish
it? Of what use could Hindostanee be to you?"
"He intended me to
go with him to India."
"Ah! here I reach
the root of the matter. He wanted you to marry him?"
"He asked me to
marry him."
"That is a fiction
-- an impudent invention to vex me."
"I beg your
pardon, it is the literal truth: he asked me more than once, and was as stiff
about urging his point as ever you could be."
"Miss Eyre, I
repeat it, you can leave me. How often am I to say the same thing? Why do you
remain pertinaciously perched on my knee, when I have given you notice to
quit?"
"Because I am
comfortable there."
"No, Jane, you are
not comfortable there, because your heart is not with me: it is with this
cousin -- this St. John. Oh, till this moment, I thought my little Jane was all
mine! I had a belief she loved me even when she left me: that was an atom of
sweet in much bitter. Long as we have been parted, hot tears as I have wept
over our separation, I never thought that while I was mourning her, she was
loving another! But it is useless grieving. Jane, leave me: go and marry
Rivers."
"Shake me off,
then, Sir, -- push me away, for I’ll not leave you of my own accord."
"Jane, I ever like
your tone of voice: it still renews hope, it sounds so truthful. When I hear
it, it carries me back a year. I forget that you have formed a new tie. But I
am not a fool -- go --"
"Where must I go,
Sir?"
"Your own way --
with the husband you have chosen."
"Who is
that?"
"You know -- this
St. John Rivers."
"He is not my
husband, nor ever will be. He does not love me: I do not love him. He loves (as
he can love, and that is not as you love) a beautiful young lady called
Rosamond. He wanted to marry me only because he thought I should make a
suitable missionary’s wife, which she would not have done. He is good and
great, but severe; and, for me, cold as an iceberg. He is not like you, Sir: I
am not happy at his side, nor near him, nor with him. He has no indulgence for
me -- no fondness. He sees nothing attractive in me; not even youth -- only a
few useful mental points. -- Then I must leave you, Sir, to go to him?"
I shuddered
involuntarily, and clung instinctively closer to my blind but beloved master.
He smiled.
"What, Jane! Is
this true? Is such really the state of matters between you and Rivers?"
"Absolutely, Sir!
Oh, you need not be jealous! I wanted to tease you a little to make you less
sad: I thought anger would be better than grief. But if you wish me to love
you, could you but see how much I do love you, you would be proud and content.
All my heart is yours, Sir: it belongs to you; and with you it would remain, were
fate to exile the rest of me from your presence for ever."
Again, as he kissed me,
painful thoughts darkened his aspect.
"My seared vision!
My crippled strength!" he murmured regretfully.
I caressed, in order to
soothe him. I knew of what he was thinking, and wanted to speak for him, but
dared not. As he turned aside his face a minute, I saw a tear slide from under
the sealed eyelid, and trickle down the manly cheek. My heart swelled.
"I am no better
than the old lightning-struck chestnut-tree in Thornfield orchard," he
remarked ere long. "And what right would that ruin have to bid a budding
woodbine cover its decay with freshness?"
"You are no ruin,
Sir -- no lightning-struck tree: you are green and vigorous. Plants will grow
about your roots, whether you ask them or not, because they take delight in
your bountiful shadow; and as they grow they will lean towards you, and wind
round you, because your strength offers them so safe a prop."
Again he smiled: I gave
him comfort.
"You speak of
friends, Jane?" he asked.
"Yes, of
friends," I answered rather hesitatingly: for I knew I meant more than
friends, but could not tell what other word to employ. He helped me.
"Ah! Jane. But I
want a wife."
"Do you,
Sir?"
"Yes: is it news
to you?"
"Of course: you
said nothing about it before."
"Is it unwelcome
news?"
"That depends on
circumstances, Sir -- on your choice."
"Which you shall
make for me, Jane. I will abide by your decision."
"Choose then, Sir
-- her who loves you best."
"I will at least
choose -- her I love best. Jane, will you marry me?"
"Yes, Sir."
"A poor blind man,
whom you will have to lead about by the hand?"
"Yes, Sir."
"A crippled man,
twenty years older than you, whom you will have to wait on?"
"Yes, Sir."
"Truly,
Jane?"
"Most truly,
Sir."
"Oh! my darling!
God bless you and reward you!"
"Mr. Rochester, if
ever I did a good deed in my life -- if ever I thought a good thought -- if
ever I prayed a sincere and blameless prayer -- if ever I wished a righteous
wish, -- I am rewarded now. To be your wife is, for me, to be as happy as I can
be on earth."
"Because you
delight in sacrifice."
"Sacrifice! What
do I sacrifice? Famine for food, expectation for content. To be privileged to
put my arms round what I value -- to press my lips to what I love -- to repose
on what I trust: is that to make a sacrifice? If so, then certainly I delight
in sacrifice."
"And to bear with
my infirmities, Jane: to overlook my deficiencies."
"Which are none,
Sir, to me. I love you better now, when I can really be useful to you, than I
did in your state of proud independence, when you disdained every part but that
of the giver and protector."
"Hitherto I have
hated to be helped -- to be led: henceforth, I feel I shall hate it no more. I
did not like to put my hand into a hireling’s, but it is pleasant to feel it
circled by Jane’s little fingers. I preferred utter loneliness to the constant
attendance of servants; but Jane’s soft ministry will be a perpetual joy. Jane
suits me: do I suit her?"
"To the finest
fibre of my nature, Sir."
"The case being
so, we have nothing in the world to wait for: we must be married
instantly."
He looked and spoke
with eagerness: his old impetuosity was rising.
"We must become
one flesh without any delay, Jane: there is but the licence to get -- then we
marry."
"Mr. Rochester, I
have just discovered the sun is far declined from its meridian, and Pilot is
actually gone home to his dinner. Let me look at your watch."
"Fasten it into
your girdle, Janet, and keep it henceforward: I have no use for it."
"It is nearly four
o’clock in the afternoon, Sir. Don’t you feel hungry?"
"The third day from
this must be our wedding-day, Jane. Never mind fine clothes and jewels, now:
all that is not worth a fillip."
"The sun has dried
up all the rain-drops, Sir. The breeze is still: it is quite hot."
"Do you know,
Jane, I have your little pearl necklace at this moment fastened round my bronze
scrag under my cravat? I have worn it since the day I lost my only treasure, as
a memento of her."
"We will go home
through the wood: that will be the shadiest way."
He pursued his own
thoughts without heeding me.
"Jane! you think
me, I daresay, an irreligious dog: but my heart swells with gratitude to the
beneficent God of this earth just now. He sees not as man sees, but far
clearer: judges not as man judges, but far more wisely. I did wrong: I would
have sullied my innocent flower -- breathed guilt on its purity: the Omnipotent
snatched it from me. I, in my stiff-necked rebellion, almost cursed the
dispensation: instead of bending to the decree, I defied it. Divine justice
pursued its course; disasters came thick on me: I was forced to pass through
the valley of the shadow of death. His chastisements are mighty; and one smote
me which has humbled me for ever. You know I was proud of my strength: but what
is it now, when I must give it over to foreign guidance, as a child does its
weakness? Of late, Jane -- only -- only of late -- I began to see and
acknowledge the hand of God in my doom. I began to experience remorse,
repentance; the wish for reconcilement to my Maker. I began sometimes to pray:
very brief prayers they were, but very sincere.
"Some days since:
nay, I can number them -- four; it was last Monday night, a singular mood came
over me: one in which grief replaced frenzy -- sorrow, sullenness. I had long
had the impression that since I could nowhere find you, you must be dead. Late
that night -- perhaps it might be between eleven and twelve o’clock -- ere I
retired to my dreary rest, I supplicated God, that, if it seemed good to Him, I
might soon be taken from this life, and admitted to that world to come, where
there was still hope of rejoining Jane.
"I was in my own
room, and sitting by the window, which was open: it soothed me to feel the
balmy night-air; though I could see no stars, and only by a vague, luminous
haze, knew the presence of a moon. I longed for thee, Janet! Oh, I longed for
thee both with soul and flesh! I asked of God, at once in anguish and humility,
if I had not been long enough desolate, afflicted, tormented; and might not
soon taste bliss and peace once more. That I merited all I endured, I
acknowledged -- that I could scarcely endure more, I pleaded; and the alpha and
omega of my heart’s wishes broke involuntarily from my lips in the words --
"Jane! Jane! Jane!’"
"Did you speak
these words aloud?"
"I did, Jane. If
any listener had heard me, he would have thought me mad: I pronounced them with
such frantic energy."
"And it was last
Monday night, somewhere near midnight?"
"Yes; but the time
is of no consequence: what followed is the strange point. You will think me
superstitious -- some superstition I have in my blood, and always had:
nevertheless, this is true -- true at least it is that I heard what I now
relate.
"As I exclaimed
"Jane! Jane! Jane!" a voice -- I cannot tell whence the voice came,
but I know whose voice it was -- replied, "I am coming: wait for me;"
and a moment after, went whispering on the wind the words -- "Where are
you?"
"I’ll tell you, if
I can, the idea, the picture these words opened to my mind: yet it is difficult
to express what I want to express. Ferndean is buried, as you see, in a heavy
wood, where sound falls dull, and dies unreverberating. "Where are
you?" seemed spoken amongst mountains; for I heard a hill-sent echo repeat
the words. Cooler and fresher at the moment the gale seemed to visit my brow: I
could have deemed that in some wild, lone scene, I and Jane were meeting. In
spirit, I believe we must have met. You no doubt were, at that hour, in
unconscious sleep, Jane: perhaps your soul wandered from its cell to comfort
mine; for those were your accents -- as certain as I live -- they were
yours!"
Reader, it was on
Monday night -- near midnight -- that I too had received the mysterious
summons: those were the very words by which I replied to it. I listened to Mr.
Rochester’s narrative, but made no disclosure in return. The coincidence struck
me as too awful and inexplicable to be communicated or discussed. If I told
anything, my tale would be such as must necessarily make a profound impression
on the mind of my hearer: and that mind, yet from its sufferings too prone to
gloom, needed not the deeper shade of the supernatural. I kept these things
then, and pondered them in my heart.
"You cannot now
wonder," continued my master, "that when you rose upon me so
unexpectedly last night, I had difficulty in believing you any other than a
mere voice and vision, something that would melt to silence and annihilation,
as the midnight whisper and mountain echo had melted before. Now, I thank God!
I know it to be otherwise. Yes, I thank God!"
He put me off his knee,
rose, and reverently lifting his hat from his brow, and bending his sightless
eyes to the earth, he stood in mute devotion. Only the last words of the
worship were audible.
"I thank my Maker,
that, in the midst of judgment, he has remembered mercy. I humbly entreat my
Redeemer to give me strength to lead henceforth a purer life than I have done
hitherto!"
Then he stretched his
hand out to be led. I took that dear hand, held it a moment to my lips, then
let it pass round my shoulder: being so much lower of stature than he, I served
both for his prop and guide. We entered the wood, and wended homeward.
READER, I married him.
A quiet wedding we had: he and I, the parson and clerk, were alone present.
When we got back from church, I went into the kitchen of the manor-house, where
Mary was cooking the dinner and John cleaning the knives, and I said: --
"Mary, I have been
married to Mr. Rochester this morning." The housekeeper and her husband
were both of that decent phlegmatic order of people, to whom one may at any
time safely communicate a remarkable piece of news without incurring the danger
of having one’s ears pierced by some shrill ejaculation, and subsequently
stunned by a torrent of wordy wonderment. Mary did look up, and she did stare
at me: the ladle with which she was basting a pair of chickens roasting at the
fire, did for some three minutes hang suspended in air; and for the same space
of time John’s knives also had rest from the polishing process: but Mary,
bending again over the roast, said only --
"Have you, Miss?
Well, for sure!"
A short time after she
pursued: "I seed you go out with the master, but I didn’t know you were
gone to church to be wed;" and she basted away. John, when I turned to
him, was grinning from ear to ear.
"I telled Mary how
it would be," he said: "I knew what Mr. Edward" (John was an old
servant, and had known his master when he was the cadet of the house,
therefore, he often gave him his christian name) -- "I knew what Mr.
Edward would do; and I was certain he would not wait long neither: and he’s
done right, for aught I know. I wish you joy, Miss!" and he politely
pulled his forelock.
"Thank you, John.
Mr. Rochester told me to give you and Mary this." I put into his hand a
five-pound note. Without waiting to hear more, I left the kitchen. In passing
the door of that sanctum some time after, I caught the words, --
"She’ll happen do
better for him nor ony o’ t’ grand ladies." And again, "If she ben’t
one o’ th’ handsomest, she’s noan faal and varry good-natured; and i’ his een
she’s fair beautiful, onybody may see that."
I wrote to Moor-House
and to Cambridge immediately, to say what I had done: fully explaining also why
I had thus acted. Diana and Mary approved the step unreservedly. Diana
announced that she would just give me time to get over the honeymoon, and then
she would come and see me.
"She had better not
wait till then, Jane," said Mr. Rochester, when I read her letter to him;
"if she does, she will be too late, for our honeymoon will shine our life
long: its beams will only fade over your grave or mine."
How St. John received
the news, I don’t know: he never answered the letter in which I communicated
it: yet six months after he wrote to me, without, however, mentioning Mr.
Rochester’s name or alluding to my marriage. His letter was then calm, and,
though very serious, kind. He has maintained a regular, though not frequent,
correspondence ever since: he hopes I am happy, and trusts I am not of those
who live without God in the world, and only mind earthly things.
You have not quite
forgotten little Adèle, have you, reader? I had not; I soon asked and obtained
leave of Mr. Rochester, to go and see her at the school where he had placed
her. Her frantic joy at beholding me again moved me much. She looked pale and
thin: she said she was not happy. I found the rules of the establishment were
too strict, its course of study too severe for a child of her age: I took her
home with me. I meant to become her governess once more, but I soon found this
impracticable; my time and cares were now required by another -- my husband
needed them all. So I sought out a school conducted on a more indulgent system,
and near enough to permit of my visiting her often, and bringing her home
sometimes. I took care she should never want for anything that could contribute
to her comfort: she soon settled in her new abode, became very happy there, and
made fair progress in her studies. As she grew up, a sound English education
corrected in a great measure her French defects; and when she left school, I
found in her a pleasing and obliging companion: docile, good-tempered, and well-principled.
By her grateful attention to me and mine, she has long since well repaid any
little kindness I ever had it in my power to offer her.
My tale draws to its
close: one word respecting my experience of married life, and one brief glance
at the fortunes of those whose names have most frequently recurred in this
narrative, and I have done.
I have now been married
ten years. I know what it is to live entirely for and with what I love best on
earth. I hold myself supremely blest -- blest beyond what language can express;
because I am my husband’s life as fully as he is mine. No woman was ever nearer
to her mate than I am: ever more absolutely bone of his bone and flesh of his
flesh. I know no weariness of my Edward’s society: he knows none of mine, any
more than we each do of the pulsation of the heart that beats in our separate
bosoms; consequently, we are ever together. To be together is for us to be at
once as free as in solitude, as gay as in company. We talk, I believe, all day
long: to talk to each other is but a more animated and an audible thinking. All
my confidence is bestowed on him, all his confidence is devoted to me; we are
precisely suited in character -- perfect concord is the result.
Mr. Rochester continued
blind the first two years of our union: perhaps it was that circumstance that
drew us so very near -- that knit us so very close: for I was then his vision,
as I am still his right hand. Literally, I was (what he often called me) the
apple of his eye. He saw nature -- he saw books through me; and never did I
weary of gazing for his behalf, and of putting into words the effect of field,
tree, town, river, cloud, sunbeam -- of the landscape before us; of the weather
round us -- and impressing by sound on his ear what light could no longer stamp
on his eye. Never did I weary of reading to him; never did I weary of
conducting him where he wished to go: of doing for him what he wished to be
done. And there was a pleasure in my services, most full, most exquisite, even
though sad -- because he claimed these services without painful shame or
damping humiliation. He loved me so truly, that he knew no reluctance in
profiting by my attendance: he felt I loved him so fondly, that to yield that
attendance was to indulge my sweetest wishes.
One morning at the end
of the two years, as I was writing a letter to his dictation, he came and bent
over me, and said --
"Jane, have you a
glittering ornament round your neck?"
I had a gold
watch-chain: I answered "Yes."
"And have you a
pale blue dress on?"
I had. He informed me
then, that for some time he had fancied the obscurity clouding one eye was
becoming less dense; and that now he was sure of it.
He and I went up to
London. He had the advice of an eminent oculist; and he eventually recovered
the sight of that one eye. He cannot now see very distinctly: he cannot read or
write much; but he can find his way without being led by the hand: the sky is
no longer a blank to him -- the earth no longer a void. When his first-born was
put into his arms, he could see that the boy had inherited his own eyes, as
they once were -- large, brilliant, and black. On that occasion, he again, with
a full heart, acknowledged that God had tempered judgment with mercy.
My Edward and I, then,
are happy: and the more so, because those we most love are happy likewise.
Diana and Mary Rivers are both married: alternately, once every year, they come
to see us, and we go to see them. Diana’s husband is a captain in the navy, a
gallant officer and a good man. Mary’s is a clergyman, a college friend of her
brother’s, and, from his attainments and principles, worthy of the connection.
Both Captain Fitzjames and Mr. Wharton love their wives, and are loved by them.
As to St. John Rivers,
he left England: he went to India. He entered on the path he had marked for
himself; he pursues it still. A more resolute, indefatigable pioneer never
wrought amidst rocks and dangers. Firm, faithful, and devoted, full of energy,
and zeal, and truth, he labours for his race; he clears their painful way to
improvement; he hews down like a giant the prejudices of creed and caste that
encumber it. He may be stern; he may be exacting; he may be ambitious yet; but
his is the sternness of the warrior Greatheart, who guards his pilgrim convoy
from the onslaught of Apollyon. His is the exaction of the apostle, who speaks
but for Christ, when he says -- "Whosoever will come after me, let him
deny himself, and take up his cross and follow me." His is the ambition of
the high master-spirit, which aims to fill a place in the first rank of those
who are redeemed from the earth -- who stand without fault before the throne of
God, who share the last mighty victories of the Lamb, who are called, and
chosen, and faithful.
St. John is unmarried:
he never will marry now. Himself has hitherto sufficed to the toil, and the
toil draws near its close: his glorious sun hastens to its setting. The last
letter I received from him drew from my eyes human tears, and yet filled my
heart with divine joy: he anticipated his sure reward, his incorruptible crown.
I know that a stranger’s hand will write to me next, to say that the good and
faithful servant has been called at length into the joy of his Lord. And why
weep for this? No fear of death will darken St. John’s last hour: his mind will
be unclouded, his heart will be undaunted, his hope will be sure, his faith
steadfast. His own words are a pledge of this: --
"My Master,"
he says, "has forewarned me. Daily He announces more distinctly, -- ‘Surely
I come quickly!’ and hourly I more eagerly respond, -- ‘Amen; even so come,
Lord Jesus!’"
PRINTED BY BERNHARD
TAUCHNITZ.